Selected quad for the lemma: woman_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
woman_n chapter_n verse_n wonder_n 1,426 5 12.8239 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

by_o god_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o follow_v but_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v belong_v unto_o private_a person_n whether_o helias_n do_v well_o in_o kill_v of_o the_o baalits_n 40._o in_o 1._o kin._n 18_o verse_n 40._o 7_o while_o the_o people_n be_v hot_a and_o fervent_a in_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n helias_n use_v a_o occasion_n &_o prevent_v the_o king_n commandment_n &_o provide_v that_o the_o prophet_n of_o baal_n shall_v be_v take_v and_o slay_v they_o must_v not_o say_v he_o be_v better_o instruct_v and_o provoke_v to_o repentance_n but_o he_o will_v have_v they_o forthwith_o to_o be_v slay_v slay_v why_o the_o baalits_n be_v slay_v for_o he_o be_v assure_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o they_o will_v not_o convert_v or_o be_v change_v and_o see_v they_o have_v now_o lead_v away_o many_o from_o the_o true_a god_n and_o will_v still_o have_v deceive_v many_o if_o they_o have_v remain_v alive_a he_o account_v it_o a_o just_a thing_n that_o their_o ungodliness_n shall_v be_v end_v with_o their_o life_n god_n undoubted_o may_v by_o a_o other_o occasion_n mean_n and_o way_n have_v confound_v and_o destroy_v the_o baalits_n baalits_n whether_o helias_n do_v well_o in_o kill_v of_o the_o baalits_n yet_o see_v he_o think_v best_a to_o deal_v after_o that_o sort_n we_o ought_v to_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a way_n but_o some_o man_n will_v say_v that_o helias_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n seem_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o murder_n for_o he_o slay_v and_o cause_v to_o be_v slay_v four_o hundred_o and_o forty_o man_n chrysostome_n treat_v of_o this_o matter_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o when_o he_o expound_v that_o place_n 17._o gal._n 1_o 17._o wherein_o he_o say_v i_o go_v not_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v apostle_n before_o i_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n say_v he_o he_o seem_v to_o diminish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o to_o extol_v his_o own_o self_n which_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v without_o fault_n but_o unto_o this_o he_o answer_v that_o the_o saieng_n and_o deed_n of_o the_o saint_n must_v not_o be_v bare_o and_o simple_o weigh_v for_o otherwise_o samuel_n may_v have_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o murderer_n who_o kill_v agag_n the_o king_n in_o like_a manner_n may_v phinees_n and_o also_o helias_n 40_o look_v in_o 1._o sam._n 15_o 31._o num._n 25_o 7._o 1._o kin._n 18_o 40_o it_o behoove_v say_v he_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o cause_n and_o to_o consider_v why_o and_o to_o what_o end_n those_o thing_n shall_v be_v either_o say_v or_o do_v paul_n say_v he_o be_v not_o so_o arrogant_a as_o he_o will_v contemn_v other_o apostle_n in_o comparison_n of_o himself_o only_o he_o will_v win_v authority_n unto_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v preach_v by_o he_o for_o he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o false_a prophet_n who_o say_v that_o unto_o paul_n which_o forbid_v the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n credit_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v but_o to_o the_o great_a apostle_n who_o suffer_v they_o bréefelie_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o as_o touch_v thing_n manifest_o reveal_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n nothing_o shall_v be_v withdraw_v or_o change_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n moreover_o he_o seem_v to_o affirm_v intent_n a_o ill_a work_n can_v be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o intent_n that_o the_o intent_n or_o end_n be_v chéeflie_o to_o be_v regard_v as_o though_o a_o work_n which_o seem_v absurd_a can_v be_v make_v good_a and_o holy_a by_o a_o intent_n as_o they_o call_v it_o this_o under_o correction_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o man_n do_v not_o i_o easy_o allow_v because_o there_o be_v many_o work_v so_o wicked_a and_o corrupt_a that_o how_o good_a a_o intent_n so_o ever_o come_v unto_o they_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o thereby_o so_o amend_v as_o they_o be_v make_v good_a let_v no_o man_n under_o this_o pretence_n say_v that_o we_o must_v steal_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o alm_n may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a neither_o let_v any_o man_n be_v absolve_v if_o he_o have_v commit_v adultery_n by_o say_v that_o he_o do_v it_o with_o a_o upright_o mind_n or_o to_o a_o good_a end_n for_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n we_o must_v not_o commit_v evil_a 8._o rom._n 3_o 8._o that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o further_o in_o thing_n that_o be_v indifferent_a which_o may_v sometime_o be_v do_v well_o and_o sometime_o ill_a a_o intent_n may_v be_v of_o some_o force_n in_o which_o kind_n of_o thing_n slaieng_v be_v easy_o place_v for_o sometime_o man_n be_v justly_o slay_v and_o sometime_o uniustlie_o for_o the_o magistrate_n have_v the_o sword_n and_o it_o be_v prescribe_v he_o by_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v punish_v offender_n and_o if_o he_o do_v it_o with_o a_o good_a mind_n and_o a_o right_a purpose_n his_o work_n be_v count_v both_o good_a and_o holy_a but_o if_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o to_o satisfy_v his_o malice_n and_o to_o prosecute_v his_o quarrel_n or_o to_o yield_v to_o his_o rage_n and_o cruelty_n he_o do_v not_o well_o also_o a_o private_a man_n who_o have_v not_o the_o right_a of_o the_o sword_n if_o he_o kill_v any_o man_n he_o do_v amiss_o unless_o he_o be_v move_v unto_o it_o by_o god_n through_o a_o certain_a prerogative_n or_o privilege_n whereby_o the_o common_a law_n be_v debar_v but_o then_o must_v he_o which_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o god_n be_v very_o certain_a of_o his_o impulsion_n and_o therefore_o man_n must_v not_o deal_v rash_o herein_o but_o a_o firm_a and_o perfect_a certainty_n must_v be_v expect_v now_o than_o i_o will_v affirm_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n seem_v to_o be_v absurd_a be_v by_o faith_n make_v honest_a and_o right_a for_o they_o be_v allow_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v do_v by_o the_o prescript_n of_o his_o word_n when_o as_o man_n cleave_v effectual_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n whether_o that_o word_n be_v of_o the_o common_a law_n or_o of_o peculiar_a inspiration_n wherefore_o the_o goodness_n of_o work_n depend_v of_o faith_n so_o that_o even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v 23_o rom._n 14_o 23_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n may_v be_v infer_v that_o which_o be_v of_o faith_n be_v just_a for_o faith_n itself_o justifi_v as_o the_o apostle_n writing_n do_v testify_v also_o the_o goodness_n of_o work_n depend_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o move_v for_o if_o any_o man_n be_v move_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o do_v uniustlie_o but_o if_o it_o be_v by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o work_v justly_o and_o unto_o this_o have_v the_o lord_n regard_n when_o in_o forbid_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o call_v down_o fire_n against_o the_o samaritan_n he_o say_v 55._o luk._n 1_o 55._o you_o know_v not_o of_o what_o spirit_n you_o be_v and_o helias_n shall_v be_v excuse_v not_o only_o through_o his_o intent_n faith_n and_o spirit_n but_o for_o because_o that_o god_n deliver_v unto_o he_o his_o judgement_n to_o be_v execute_v and_o appoint_v he_o to_o be_v a_o judge_n of_o the_o baalits_n so_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v account_v a_o private_a man_n but_o a_o man_n of_o god_n who_o even_o as_o by_o a_o ordinary_a way_n in_o the_o earth_n he_o will_v have_v magistrate_n to_o be_v his_o deputy_n so_o likewise_o can_v he_o promote_v to_o that_o place_n of_o dignity_n who_o soever_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a 8_o but_o pass_v over_o these_o excuse_n i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o law_n for_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 18._o chapter_n it_o be_v decree_v 20_o deut._n 18_o 20_o that_o the_o prophet_n shall_v be_v slay_v which_o speak_v lie_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o which_o prophesi_v in_o the_o name_n of_o other_o god_n 11._o verse_n 11._o and_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n be_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n even_o as_o touch_v private_a man_n and_o woman_n which_o worship_v idol_n but_o in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n 5._o verse_n 5._o not_o only_a death_n be_v assign_v to_o the_o prophet_n which_o seduce_v but_o there_o be_v also_o a_o commandment_n add_v that_o none_o shall_v spare_v his_o own_o brother_n or_o the_o son_n of_o his_o mother_n neither_o son_n nor_o daughter_n nor_o servant_n nor_o those_o which_o be_v most_o dear_a and_o near_a friend_n unto_o he_o thirdlie_o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o whole_a city_n when_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o idolatry_n shall_v be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n &_o sword_n further_o 16._o verse_n 16._o in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o blasphemous_a man_n shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o live_v
right_a but_o from_o that_o which_o be_v god_n right_a for_o we_o must_v not_o have_v respect_n what_o the_o wife_n will_v but_o what_o god_n will_n and_o as_o concern_v that_o which_o sara_n do_v she_o do_v it_o by_o the_o set_n on_o and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherewith_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o she_o and_o other_o godly_a woman_n be_v endue_v the_o schoolman_n among_o the_o number_n of_o who_o we_o cite_v caietanus_n say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o law_n extant_a which_o expresselie_o forbid_v polygamy_n 21._o to_o the_o 21._o which_o although_o they_o affirm_v yet_o certeinlie_o other_o say_v not_o so_o in_o deed_n the_o very_a form_n thereof_o in_o plain_a term_n be_v not_o find_v and_o express_v yet_o be_v the_o same_o necessary_o gather_v by_o the_o word_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o paul_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o this_o question_n of_o barrenness_n 16_o among_o the_o jew_n barrenness_n be_v reproachful_a 10._o in_o 1._o sam._n 1._o 10._o and_o be_v account_v a_o very_a gréevous_a infamy_n and_o that_o for_o many_o cause_n first_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v repugnant_a unto_o that_o precept_n wherein_o god_n command_v both_o immediate_o after_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o gen._n 1_o 22._o &_o 28._o &_o 8_o 17_o &_o 9_o 1._o and_o straitwaie_o after_o the_o flood_n say_v increase_n and_o multiply_v further_o because_o those_o that_o be_v barren_a attain_v not_o to_o that_o blessing_n of_o god_n which_o he_o promise_v unto_o abraham_n to_o wit_n that_o his_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n again_o they_o which_o want_v child_n seem_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o be_v hate_v of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v their_o generation_n and_o stock_n to_o be_v spread_v any_o further_a abroad_o but_o other_o thought_n that_o barrenness_n be_v therefore_o infamous_a among_o the_o jew_n because_o messiah_n shall_v proceed_v from_o their_o posterity_n and_o so_o every_o one_o endeavour_v to_o have_v many_o child_n that_o out_o of_o his_o progeny_n messiah_n may_v one_o day_n be_v bear_v howbeit_o he_o be_v promise_v only_o unto_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o family_n of_o david_n so_o as_o it_o behoove_v only_o these_o to_o be_v careful_a of_o that_o matter_n howbeit_o of_o that_o desire_n there_o may_v be_v bring_v a_o other_o reason_n much_o more_o true_a for_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o pure_a woorship_v of_o god_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o public_a profession_n retain_v only_o among_o the_o jew_n wherefore_o the_o more_o that_o the_o jew_n increase_v in_o number_n the_o great_a multitude_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n therefore_o do_v holy_a man_n study_v to_o have_v a_o large_a posterity_n that_o the_o true_a god_n may_v be_v worship_v of_o a_o great_a many_o but_o if_o to_o any_o man_n there_o happen_v no_o child_n he_o be_v note_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o infamy_n &_o rebuke_n therefore_o when_o rachel_n at_o the_o length_n become_v great_a with_o child_n 23._o gen._n 30_o 23._o the_o lord_n say_v she_o have_v take_v away_o my_o rebuke_n 1._o esaie_n 4_o 1._o and_o esaie_n say_v in_o that_o day_n shall_v seven_o woman_n take_v hold_v of_o one_o man_n &_o they_o shall_v say_v we_o will_v find_v ourselves_o bread_n and_o apparel_n only_o take_v from_o we_o our_o rebuke_n moreover_o among_o ethnik_n it_o be_v reproachful_a to_o be_v without_o child_n and_o among_o the_o roman_n those_o which_o have_v beget_v many_o child_n be_v excuse_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n from_o charge_n and_o public_a office_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la numero_fw-la liberorum_fw-la se_fw-la excusant_fw-la at_o rome_n doubtless_o three_o be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o excuse_n in_o italy_n be_v require_v four_o in_o the_o province_n five_o so_o they_o be_v not_o adopt_v nor_o yet_o be_v take_v of_o the_o enemy_n nor_o die_v out_o of_o the_o war_n howbeit_o this_o number_n of_o child_n excuse_v only_o from_o personal_a office_n not_o from_o office_n of_o inheritance_n but_o sixtéene_a child_n in_o number_n excuse_v from_o both_o kind_n of_o office_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la immunitatis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n semper_fw-la which_o be_v make_v by_o pertinax_n afterward_o also_o twelve_o do_v excuse_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr decurionibus_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la decurio_fw-la brief_o the_o bear_n of_o child_n have_v always_o be_v a_o honourable_a thing_n among_o all_o nation_n a_o certain_a lacedaemonian_a be_v a_o old_a man_n and_o unmarried_a as_o he_o pass_v by_o the_o high_a way_n see_v a_o man_n that_o do_v not_o rise_v up_o to_o give_v he_o honour_n and_o he_o ask_v of_o he_o why_o he_o do_v so_o who_o answer_v he_o because_o thou_o have_v leave_v none_o unto_o the_o commonweal_n that_o may_v rise_v up_o unto_o i_o when_o i_o be_o old_a and_o albeit_o that_o among_o the_o christian_n this_o kind_n of_o rebuke_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v take_v away_o yet_o must_v we_o endeavour_v to_o our_o power_n that_o we_o may_v leave_v very_o many_o child_n unto_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o example_n of_o anna_n we_o be_v warn_v that_o the_o lack_n of_o child_n and_o fruitfulness_n be_v not_o to_o depend_v only_o of_o the_o second_o cause_n see_v they_o procee_v chéeflie_o from_o god_n himself_o for_o in_o the_o family_n of_o king_n abimelech_n 18._o gen._n 2_o 18._o god_n shut_v up_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o they_o may_v not_o bring_v forth_o afterward_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o abraham_n they_o be_v deliver_v that_o they_o may_v bear_v child_n so_o as_o rachel_n when_o she_o gréevouslie_o afflict_a herself_o 1._o gen._n 30._o 1._o and_o say_v to_o her_o husband_n give_v i_o child_n for_o else_o i_o shall_v die_v jacob_n be_v angry_a say_v be_o i_o unto_o thou_o in_o god_n steed_n if_o god_n keep_v from_o thou_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o womb_n why_o do_v thou_o cry_v unto_o i_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n fruitfulness_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god._n therefore_o in_o esaie_n the_o 66._o chapter_n he_o say_v 9_o verse_n 9_o am_n i_o he_o that_o make_v other_o to_o bear_v and_o bear_v not_o myself_o and_o david_n in_o the_o psalm_n pronounce_v it_o be_v god_n that_o make_v the_o barren_a woman_n to_o keep_v house_n 9_o psal_n 113_o 9_o and_o to_o abound_v with_o child_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o child_n to_o marry_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o parent_n 17_o now_o shall_v it_o be_v very_o well_o to_o see_v 5._o in_o judge_n 14_o verse_n 5._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o child_n to_o contract_v matrimony_n without_o consent_n of_o their_o parent_n forefather_n a_o example_n of_o the_o forefather_n certeinlie_o samson_n will_v not_o and_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o much_o honesty_n and_o of_o thankfulness_n towards_o the_o parent_n if_o matrimony_n be_v not_o contract_v without_o their_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n at_o the_o beginning_n adam_n do_v not_o choose_v himself_o a_o wife_n god_n be_v his_o father_n and_o bring_v eve_n unto_o he_o 22._o gen._n 2_o 22._o abraham_n when_o isaac_n be_v a_o man_n 3._o gen._n 24_o 3._o send_v his_o servant_n to_o his_o kindred_n to_o seek_v out_o a_o wife_n there_o for_o his_o son_n 1._o gen._n 28_o 1._o isaac_n also_o send_v jacob_n into_o mesopotamia_n to_o his_o uncle_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v get_v he_o a_o wife_n there_o god_n the_o law_n of_o god_n afterward_o follow_v the_o law_n that_o be_v give_v of_o god_n by_o moses_n that_o child_n shall_v honour_v their_o parent_n but_o the_o honour_n which_o must_v be_v give_v unto_o they_o parent_n wherein_o stand_v the_o honour_n of_o parent_n be_v not_o only_o to_o uncover_v the_o head_n to_o give_v the_o upper_a hand_n and_o to_o rise_v up_o yet_o these_o thing_n must_v also_o be_v do_v though_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o they_o must_v also_o sustain_v their_o progenitour_n if_o need_n shall_v require_v and_o show_v themselves_o dutiful_a towards_o they_o wherefore_o define_v the_o power_n of_o a_o father_n define_v the_o power_n of_o a_o father_n be_v define_v to_o be_v a_o bond_n of_o piety_n whereby_o child_n be_v bind_v to_o their_o parent_n to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o humanity_n and_o thankfulness_n if_o so_o be_v child_n in_o other_o thing_n ought_v to_o obey_v their_o parent_n doubtless_o they_o ought_v chéeflie_o to_o do_v it_o in_o contract_v of_o matrimony_n hereof_o there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a law_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la if_o a_o maiden_n which_o be_v not_o betroth_v 16._o verse_n 16._o shall_v be_v deceive_v he_o that_o have_v
understand_v only_o concern_v the_o seven_o nation_n which_o be_v inhabitant_n of_o the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n neither_o think_v they_o that_o god_n do_v forbid_v but_o that_o the_o hebrews_n may_v marry_v with_o other_o nation_n they_o add_v also_o that_o as_o touch_v the_o chanaanit_n that_o law_n may_v sometime_o be_v dispense_v with_o for_o rahab_n the_o chanaanite_n because_o she_o be_v godly_a and_o favour_v the_o israelit_n 5._o matt._n 1_o 5._o become_v the_o wife_n of_o salmon_n who_o not_o only_o be_v a_o hebrew_n but_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n i_o omit_v juda_n 2._o gen._n 38_o 2._o that_o go_v in_o to_o a_o wife_n of_o the_o chanaanit_n because_o he_o be_v otherwise_o unclean_a so_o than_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o ground_v a_o argument_n upon_o his_o example_n more_o probable_a be_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 11._o verse_n 11._o where_o god_n give_v leave_v unto_o the_o israelit_n if_o themselves_o will_v to_o marry_v the_o strange_a woman_n which_o be_v captive_n among_o they_o but_o first_o he_o will_v that_o the_o head_n of_o she_o that_o shall_v be_v marry_v shall_v be_v shave_v her_o nail_n not_o pare_v her_o garment_n change_v and_o that_o she_o shall_v mourn_v for_o her_o parent_n by_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o day_n herby_n they_o gather_v that_o such_o marriage_n be_v not_o by_o all_o mean_v forbid_v yea_o and_o boaz_n marry_v ruth_n a_o moabite_n and_o david_n take_v maacha_n the_o daughter_n of_o thalma_n the_o king_n of_o gessur_n 3._o ruth_n 4_o 13._o 2._o sam._n 3_o 3._o solomon_n also_o have_v the_o daughter_n of_o pharaoh_n neither_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v he_o reproove_v of_o any_o nay_o rather_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v commend_v because_o he_o love_v jehovah_n 3._o 1._o king_n 3_o 1._o and_o 3._o i_o pass_v over_o samson_n of_o who_o matrimony_n with_o a_o stranger_n it_o be_v evident_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n 1._o judg._n 14_o 1._o moreover_o there_o be_v a_o place_n bring_v out_o of_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 12._o 1._o cor._n 7_o 12._o wherein_o be_v decree_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o beléever_n to_o abide_v with_o a_o wife_n that_o be_v a_o unbeléever_n hereby_o they_o gather_v that_o the_o diversity_n of_o religion_n make_v not_o but_o that_o marriage_n may_v be_v firm_a yea_o and_o augustine_n de_fw-fr adulterinis_fw-la coniugijs_fw-la ad_fw-la pollentium_fw-la in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n and_o also_o de_n fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la the_o 19_o chapter_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o evident_a place_n extant_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o such_o kind_n of_o marriage_n shall_v not_o be_v contract_v nevertheless_o jerom_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o jovinian_a sharpelie_o inveih_v against_o this_o kind_n of_o matrimony_n and_o do_v open_o witness_v and_o complain_v that_o such_o marriage_n in_o his_o time_n be_v not_o eschew_v also_o the_o same_o augustine_n in_o the_o place_n now_o allege_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la be_v sorry_a that_o man_n do_v not_o think_v it_o to_o be_v sin_n to_o contract_v marriage_n with_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o sundry_a religion_n but_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n put_v as_o touch_v solomon_n because_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v altogether_o clear_a of_o sin_n by_o reason_n of_o these_o marriage_n since_o in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 8._o verse_n 3_o &_o 8._o there_o be_v mention_v make_v that_o some_o nation_n be_v altogether_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o israelite_n for_o the_o ammonite_n and_o the_o moabit_n be_v perpetuallie_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o idumean_n and_o egyptian_n only_a unto_o the_o three_o generation_n and_o yet_o do_v solomon_n immediate_o in_o the_o first_o generation_n admit_v a_o egyptian_a woman_n into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o hebrews_n end_n look_v in_o 1._o king_n 11_o 1._o and_o gen._n 24_o at_o the_o end_n 35_o now_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n let_v we_o bring_v forth_o the_o reason_n which_o condemn_v and_o forbid_v this_o kind_n of_o matrimony_n and_o it_o be_v prove_v not_o to_o be_v lawful_a unless_o that_o party_n which_o be_v of_o the_o condemn_a religion_n shall_v depart_v from_o the_o same_o for_o when_o as_o god_n so_o oftentimes_o forbid_v these_o kind_n of_o matrimony_n he_o add_v the_o cause_n 4._o verse_n 4._o lest_o the_o unbeléeving_a party_n shall_v allure_v the_o faithful_a party_n unto_o idolatry_n because_o if_o the_o unbeléeving_a party_n abide_v in_o his_o or_o her_o religion_n the_o other_o party_n do_v put_v forth_o itself_o into_o great_a hazard_n which_o the_o heavenly_a father_n will_v have_v utterlie_o to_o be_v turn_v away_o from_o his_o child_n wherefore_o if_o the_o beléever_n think_v that_o he_o shall_v abide_v steadfast_a in_o this_o kind_n of_o wedlock_n he_o undoubted_o seem_v to_o tempt_v god_n further_n we_o learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o solomon_n who_o at_o length_n make_v idol_n and_o church_n for_o his_o outlandish_a wife_n what_o success_n such_o matrimony_n have_v 4_o 1._o king_n 11_o 4_o and_o josaphat_n on_o this_o behalf_n sin_v gréevouslie_o 6._o 2._o chr._n 18_o 1._o and_o 21_o 6._o achab_n also_o though_o he_o be_v a_o evil_a prince_n yet_o become_v he_o much_o worse_a by_o reason_n of_o jezabel_n 31._o 1_o king_n 16_o verse_n 31._o moreover_o what_o happen_v unto_o the_o israelite_n when_o they_o shameful_o keep_v company_n with_o the_o daughter_n of_o moab_n in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n it_o be_v manifest_a 1._o num._n 25_o 1._o jacob_n and_o rebecca_n take_v it_o in_o very_o ill_a part_n that_o esau_n marry_v strange_a wife_n 46._o gen._n 27_o 46._o and_o esdras_n 10._o esdr_n 10_o 10._o after_o his_o return_n out_o of_o babylon_n when_o he_o perceive_v that_o the_o israelite_n have_v couple_v themselves_o with_o the_o moabite_n and_o with_o foreigner_n of_o a_o diverse_a religion_n he_o undo_v those_o matrimony_n the_o which_o if_o they_o have_v be_v stable_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n it_o have_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o have_v sever_v those_o person_n again_o paul_n in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o sixth_o chapter_n 14._o verse_n 14._o when_o he_o write_v do_v not_o you_o bear_v the_o yoke_n with_o the_o unbeliever_n it_o may_v seem_v that_o he_o forbid_v this_o and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o he_o allude_v it_o unto_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n 1●_n deut._n 22_o 1●_n which_o forbid_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o till_o the_o ground_n with_o a_o ox_n and_o a_o ass_n together_o for_o when_o a_o yoke_n be_v put_v upon_o beast_n which_o be_v of_o diverse_a nature_n or_o form_n the_o work_n go_v not_o well_o forward_o herewithal_o the_o apostle_n add_v for_o what_o fellowship_n have_v unrighteousness_n with_o righteousness_n or_o what_o partake_v have_v light_a with_o darkness_n some_o man_n will_v say_v that_o this_o place_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v extend_v unto_o matrimony_n see_v paul_n do_v there_o reproove_v the_o corinthian_n because_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o keep_v company_n with_o the_o ethnik_n in_o outward_a thing_n without_o commit_v of_o sin_n therefore_o paul_n will_v that_o so_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v sever_v themselves_o from_o they_o and_o he_o bring_v forth_o a_o sentence_n which_o be_v universal_a and_o not_o particular_a touch_v matrimony_n but_o if_o the_o sentence_n be_v general_a and_o that_o he_o pronounce_v the_o same_o of_o other_o affair_n how_o much_o rather_o shall_v it_o be_v of_o force_n in_o the_o contract_n of_o marriage_n together_o with_o they_o erasmus_n erasmus_n erasmus_n also_o in_o his_o annotation_n say_v that_o the_o same_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o forbid_v outward_a deal_n together_o but_o marriage_n also_o and_o undoubted_o reason_n persuade_v the_o same_o because_o the_o property_n of_o marriage_n be_v to_o be_v a_o participation_n of_o heavenly_a and_o humane_a thing_n for_o if_o this_o be_v attribute_v unto_o friendship_n much_o more_o it_o shall_v be_v proper_a unto_o matrimony_n see_v the_o same_o be_v a_o friendship_n most_o néerelie_o knit_v 36_o cyprian_a cyprian_a cyprian_a who_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o augustine_n in_o the_o place_n now_o cite_v in_o his_o epistle_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la do_v lament_v that_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n be_v trouble_v with_o that_o detestable_a vice_n even_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o it_o be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o augustine_n and_o jerom_n they_o prostitute_v say_v he_o the_o member_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o gentile_n jerom._n jerom._n and_o jerom_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o jovinian_a write_v that_o the_o christian_a parent_n do_v prostitute_v their_o member_n unto_o the_o idol_n and_o he_o further_o
act_n for_o a_o young_a man_n to_o commit_v fornication_n and_o there_o want_v not_o some_o in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n so_o as_o by_o these_o reason_n the_o filthiness_n of_o whoredom_n be_v so_o extenuate_v that_o either_o it_o be_v not_o count_v for_o sin_n or_o else_o think_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o least_o sin_n 2_o we_o must_v not_o have_v a_o respect_n unto_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n but_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o what_o man_n think_v or_o judge_v but_o what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o solomon_n there_o be_v detest_a of_o fornication_n in_o every_o place_n law_n fornication_n be_v forbid_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o law_n but_o in_o the_o law_n they_o say_v there_o be_v nothing_o decree_v against_o it_o see_v they_o will_v reason_v by_o the_o law_n i_o also_o will_v bring_v testimony_n out_o of_o it_o whereby_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v understand_v that_o fornication_n be_v forbid_v in_o leviticus_fw-la in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n and_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o jew_n be_v forbid_v to_o link_v themselves_o unto_o strange_a woman_n again_o 17._o verse_n 17._o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 25._o chapter_n it_o be_v command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o harlot_n nor_o common_a woman_n in_o israel_n let_v these_o place_n be_v compare_v together_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o have_v any_o harlot_n neither_o strange_a woman_n nor_o yet_o woman_n of_o israel_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o forbid_a but_o some_o will_v say_v how_o then_o have_v samson_n fellowship_n with_o a_o harlot_n some_o of_o the_o hebrews_n answer_n 1._o jud._n 16_o 1._o that_o she_o be_v not_o a_o harlot_n with_o who_o samson_n have_v fellowship_n but_o one_o that_o keep_v a_o vitling_n house_n but_o forsomuch_o as_o that_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a answer_n i_o think_v that_o a_o other_o answer_n must_v be_v make_v the_o public_a weal_n of_o the_o hebrews_n be_v at_o that_o time_n corrupt_v for_o they_o live_v then_o under_o the_o philistine_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n if_o they_o have_v then_o receive_v some_o of_o their_o vice_n and_o corrupt_a manner_n wherefore_o some_o harlot_n they_o have_v howbeit_o not_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o law_n but_o through_o the_o use_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o philistine_n 3_o but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 14_o it_o be_v forbid_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n heb._n 13_o 14_o whoredom_n be_v open_o and_o manifest_o forbid_v to_o the_o hebrews_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v adulterer_n and_o fornicator_n the_o lord_n will_v judge_v the_o lord_n be_v not_o say_v to_o judge_v and_o to_o avenge_v except_o it_o be_v for_o gréevous_a sin_n and_o to_o the_o ephesian_n not_o only_o covetous_a man_n and_o idolater_n 5._o ephesi_n 5_o 5._o but_o also_o fornicator_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o the_o corinthian_n also_o where_o paul_n write_v of_o excommunication_n i_o speak_v not_o say_v he_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o fornicator_n 11._o 1._o cor._n 5_o 11._o but_o if_o any_o brother_n be_v name_v a_o fornicator_n with_o such_o you_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o eat_v but_o he_o treat_v much_o more_o manifest_o of_o all_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n and_o that_o of_o very_a purpose_n for_o many_o as_o it_o be_v say_v be_v of_o a_o evil_a opinion_n as_o touch_v this_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n first_o he_o say_v meat_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o belly_n &c_n 1._o cor._n 6_o verse_n 13_o &c_n &c_n and_o the_o belly_n for_o meat_n but_o god_n shall_v destroy_v both_o this_o and_o that_o now_o the_o body_n be_v not_o for_o fornication_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n moreover_o all_o meat_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v pure_a but_o for_o the_o offence_n of_o our_o neighbour_n we_o ought_v sometime_o to_o abstain_v howbeit_o some_o man_n may_v say_v meat_n be_v necessary_a to_o live_v by_o it_o be_v say_v paul_n in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n god_n shall_v destroy_v both_o the_o meat_n and_o the_o belly_n wherefore_o thou_o must_v not_o so_o much_o esteem_v it_o that_o for_o such_o a_o cause_n thou_o shall_v offend_v thy_o brother_n it_o be_v not_o command_v that_o thou_o shall_v abstain_v from_o all_o meat_n general_o but_o from_o that_o only_a whereby_o thy_o weak_a brother_n be_v offend_v but_o as_o touch_v fornication_n say_v he_o of_o which_o you_o make_v small_a account_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v a_o far_a other_o respect_n your_o body_n be_v not_o appoint_v for_o fornication_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o must_v not_o be_v pass_v over_o that_o paul_n with_o great_a wisdom_n say_v not_o that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o give_v for_o procreation_n but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v for_o fornication_n since_o the_o body_n be_v also_o give_v for_o procreation_n sake_n oftentimes_o man_n be_v wont_v to_o excuse_v their_o fault_n and_o to_o impute_v they_o unto_o nature_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n say_v he_o be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o lord_n so_o than_o the_o rule_n of_o life_n must_v be_v take_v thereby_o and_o not_o by_o evil_a example_n relative_n the_o nature_n of_o relative_n this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o relative_n not_o only_o of_o those_o relative_n which_o in_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v belong_v to_o other_o but_o also_o of_o those_o which_o by_o any_o mean_n be_v refer_v to_o another_o thing_n as_o the_o head_n unto_o the_o body_n and_o likewise_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o head_n for_o when_o we_o see_v the_o head_n we_o straitwaie_o require_v the_o body_n and_o again_o when_o we_o see_v the_o body_n we_o require_v the_o head_n such_o relative_n as_o the_o logician_n say_v be_v call_v secundum_fw-la dici_fw-la the_o lord_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o his_o head_n wherefore_o paul_n both_o wise_o and_o pithy_o dispute_v when_o he_o say_v the_o body_n be_v not_o make_v to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o shall_v pollute_v itself_o with_o lust_n but_o to_o be_v correspondent_a unto_o the_o head_n and_o to_o be_v conformable_a unto_o it_o and_o he_o add_v 14._o verse_n 14._o god_n which_o have_v raise_v up_o christ_n shall_v raise_v we_o up_o also_o by_o his_o power_n the_o first_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o relative_n the_o second_o from_o god_n himself_o for_o if_o he_o shall_v raise_v up_o our_o body_n as_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o christ_n why_o then_o do_v we_o shameful_o use_v they_o he_o proceed_v further_a 15._o verse_n 15._o and_o say_v but_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n shall_v i_o then_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n &_o make_v it_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n undoubted_o a_o weighty_a argument_n which_o he_o conclude_v shall_v i_o take_v say_v he_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v no_o without_o doubt_n for_o this_o be_v to_o rend_v in_o piece_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v a_o most_o cruel_a thing_n to_o pluck_v away_o the_o member_n from_o a_o livelie_a body_n and_o to_o join_v they_o to_o a_o rot_a or_o dead_a body_n but_o herein_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o reason_n do_v consist_v christ_n can_v commit_v fornication_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o will_v commit_v fornication_n thou_o must_v be_v first_o pluck_v from_o christ_n here_o be_v show_v that_o fornication_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sin_n but_o also_o a_o deadly_a and_o most_o gréevous_a sin_n because_o it_o pluck_v we_o away_o from_o christ_n 4_o afterward_o he_o add_v 16._o verse_n 16._o he_o which_o couple_v himself_o unto_o a_o harlot_n be_v become_v one_o body_n with_o her_o for_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n and_o he_o which_o be_v join_v with_o god_n be_v one_o spirit_n this_o place_n be_v very_o full_a of_o consolation_n 6._o before_o in_o the_o ten_o plac_n art_n 6._o forsomuch_o as_o it_o declare_v that_o we_o be_v join_v most_o nigh_o unto_o christ_n from_o who_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v pluck_v away_o before_o we_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n he_o which_o cleave_v unto_o a_o harlot_n be_v become_v one_o body_n with_o she_o for_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n the_o apostle_n seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n to_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o genesis_n in_o transfer_v they_o to_o whoredom_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o matrimony_n for_o these_o word_n be_v first_o speak_v of_o adam_n and_o eve_n because_o the_o flesh_n of_o eve_n be_v before_o in_o the_o flesh_n of_o adam_n from_o who_o god_n take_v a_o
unto_o the_o corinthian_n 10_o 1._o co._n 11_o 10_o command_v woman_n to_o have_v their_o head_n cover_v in_o the_o holy_a congregation_n at_o the_o leastwise_o because_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o even_o as_o woman_n ought_v to_o shadow_v their_o face_n that_o they_o be_v not_o see_v so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n man_n ought_v to_o temper_v themselves_o that_o they_o do_v not_o over-curiouslie_a behold_v they_o of_o which_o matter_n tertullian_n write_v many_o thing_n very_o well_o in_o a_o little_a book_n entitle_v de_n virginibus_fw-la velandis_fw-la and_o solomon_n thus_o wise_o admonish_v lust_n not_o after_o her_o beauty_n 25._o prou._n 6_o 25._o also_o gregory_n the_o first_o they_o say_v he_o which_o abuse_v the_o outward_a eye_n be_v worthy_a to_o have_v the_o inward_a eye_n shadow_v 1._o job._n 31_o 1._o i_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n say_v job_n with_o my_o eye_n that_o i_o will_v not_o think_v upon_o a_o virgin_n he_o say_v not_o only_o that_o i_o will_v not_o look_v upon_o but_o that_o i_o will_v not_o admit_v into_o my_o mind_n a_o imagination_n of_o she_o this_o see_v david_n do_v not_o he_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o danger_n which_o all_o godly_a man_n ought_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n 14._o in_o 2._o sam._n 12_o 14._o 22_o somewhat_o we_o will_v declare_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n and_o this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o i_o for_o by_o the_o gréevousnesse_n of_o punishment_n we_o know_v the_o weightinesse_n of_o sin_n by_o reward_n and_o punishment_n commonweal_n be_v preserve_v but_o punishment_n must_v be_v apply_v according_a to_o the_o heaviness_n of_o offence_n it_o be_v very_o well_o write_v in_o the_o 24._o cause_n question_v 1._o in_o the_o chapter_n non_fw-fr afferamus_fw-la which_o word_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o jerom_n but_o rather_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o augustine_n schism_n the_o greevousnesse_n of_o schism_n how_o gréevous_a a_o sin_n be_v schism_n or_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n it_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o punishment_n lay_v upon_o man_n for_o other_o gréevous_a sin_n the_o idolatry_n do_v unto_o the_o melt_a calf_n 29._o exo._n 22_o 27._o jere._n 36_o 29._o god_n punish_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o death_n because_o zedechias_n burn_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n god_n do_v revenge_v it_o with_o captivity_n but_o the_o rebellion_n do_v against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n he_o punish_v more_o gréevouslie_o 16_o num._n 16_o he_o send_v a_o fire_n wherewith_o those_o which_o conspire_v with_o chore_n be_v consume_v and_o the_o earth_n swallow_v up_o the_o seditious_a person_n place_n a_o division_n of_o this_o place_n we_o will_v first_o then_o consider_v the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n that_o we_o may_v understand_v how_o heinous_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v secondlie_o we_o will_v see_v whether_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v have_v equal_a punishment_n and_o whether_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o like_a punishment_n and_o whether_o of_o they_o be_v the_o great_a sinner_n thirdlie_o what_o evil_n may_v come_v by_o reason_n that_o these_o punishment_n be_v either_o neglect_v or_o utterlie_o take_v await_v as_o touch_v the_o first_o we_o must_v search_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o may_v be_v find_v touch_v the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n after_o that_o we_o will_v descend_v to_o the_o reckon_n up_o of_o punishment_n of_o diverse_a nation_n then_o will_v we_o come_v to_o the_o roman_a law_n and_o last_o of_o all_o unto_o the_o ecclestiasticall_a and_o canon_n law_n of_o the_o first_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o divine_a scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n 23._o rom._n 6_o 23._o see_v therefore_o that_o death_n be_v due_a unto_o sin_n forthwith_o after_o a_o man_n have_v transgress_v he_o may_v be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n but_o god_n be_v not_o so_o strict_a a_o exactor_n he_o grant_v as_o yet_o some_o space_n unto_o life_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v sometime_o break_v off_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o magistrate_n if_o gréevous_a crime_n be_v commit_v which_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v suffer_v but_o there_o be_v other_o sin_n of_o less_o weight_n for_o which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o put_v man_n to_o death_n further_o we_o will_v see_v whether_o adultery_n may_v be_v reckon_v among_o those_o sin_n whereunto_o death_n be_v due_a certeinlie_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n whereunto_o death_n belong_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n declare_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o for_o good_a cause_n for_o by_o this_o wickedness_n be_v hurt_v that_o society_n from_o whence_o be_v derive_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o friendship_n among_o man_n 11_o gen._n 26_o 11_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n when_o abimelech_n the_o king_n of_o gerar_n have_v see_v isaac_n play_v somewhat_o familiar_o with_o rebecca_n he_o perceive_v he_o to_o be_v her_o husband_n and_o not_o her_o brother_n 20._o death_n for_o adultery_n before_o the_o law_n gen._n 39_o 20._o so_o then_o he_o charge_v that_o none_o upon_o the_o pain_n of_o death_n shall_v touch_v that_o woman_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n adultery_n be_v by_o the_o ethnik_v punish_v with_o death_n joseph_n after_o that_o it_o have_v be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n in_o egypt_n that_o he_o commit_v adultery_n with_o his_o mistress_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o head_n officer_n of_o capital_a crime_n and_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n thamar_n 24._o gen._n 38_o 24._o when_o she_o have_v bury_v two_o husband_n and_o wait_v for_o the_o three_o unto_o who_o she_o be_v betroth_v do_v commit_v adultery_n and_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v burn_v and_o undoubted_o when_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v betroth_v do_v abuse_v herself_o she_o commit_v adultery_n for_o although_o it_o be_v not_o a_o full_a marriage_n yet_o be_v there_o such_o hope_n of_o marriage_n as_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v pollute_v this_o do_v the_o emperor_n severus_n perceive_v the_o law_n may_v be_v read_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterio_fw-la in_o the_o digest_v the_o law_n siuxor_n in_o the_o paraph_n dinus_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 10_o deut._n 22_o 22_o levit._fw-la 20_o 10_o and_o in_o the_o 20._o of_o leviticus_fw-la by_o the_o law_n that_o be_v there_o give_v the_o adulterer_n &_o adulteress_n be_v command_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n which_o sentence_n god_n in_o the_o 16._o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n confirm_v 38._o verse_n 38._o where_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v bring_v punishment_n upon_o the_o adulterous_a israelit_n the_o same_o law_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o john_n when_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n have_v bring_v unto_o christ_n a_o woman_n which_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n they_o say_v moses_n command_v we_o in_o the_o law_n 5._o verse_n 5._o that_o such_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v stone_v etc._n etc._n so_o great_o do_v god_n esteem_v chastity_n and_o unspotted_a wedlock_n as_o he_o will_v not_o have_v so_o much_o as_o a_o suspicion_n to_o remain_v between_o they_o which_o be_v man_n and_o wife_n for_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n gelousie_n num._n 5_o 14._o the_o law_n of_o gelousie_n there_o be_v ordain_v a_o law_n touch_v gelousie_n she_o which_o be_v suspect_v of_o adultery_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o priest_n curse_n be_v denounce_v a_o drink_n be_v give_v she_o and_o straitwaie_o it_o be_v know_v whether_o she_o be_v a_o adulteress_n or_o no._n and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v marry_v a_o wife_n and_o have_v be_v able_a to_o gather_v and_o prove_v by_o certain_a sign_n that_o she_o be_v not_o a_o virgin_n she_o be_v punish_v betroth_v punishment_n for_o abuse_v a_o maid_n betroth_v if_o a_o maiden_n betroth_v to_o a_o husband_n have_v be_v force_v by_o any_o abroad_o in_o the_o field_n the_o ravisher_n shall_v have_v be_v punish_v with_o death_n if_o in_o the_o city_n the_o damsel_n shall_v also_o have_v have_v the_o same_o punishment_n deuteronomie_n 22._o so_o then_o great_a severity_n be_v use_v herein_o 25_o verse_n 13_o 25_o howbeit_o the_o revenge_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o private_a person_n the_o husband_n kill_v not_o his_o wife_n nor_o the_o father_n his_o daughter_n but_o the_o matter_n be_v bring_v before_o a_o judge_n 27._o verse_n 27._o so_o read_v we_o to_o be_v do_v in_o susanna_n although_o that_o history_n be_v apocryphal_a in_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n we_o read_v that_o nabuchadnezar_a roast_a zedechias_n and_o achabus_n 22._o jere._n 29_o 22._o two_o unchaste_a priest_n these_o thing_n we_o have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n especial_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n adultery_n the_o ethnik_n law_n for_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n 23_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o suffer_v not_o
ought_v to_o have_v govern_v well_o in_o his_o own_o house_n 4._o 1._o tim._n 3_o 4._o but_o there_o be_v a_o suspicion_n of_o negligence_n see_v his_o wife_n do_v fall_v into_o adultery_n if_o a_o clergy_n man_n have_v not_o reject_v his_o wife_n when_o she_o fall_v into_o adultery_n the_o eliberine_n council_n give_v he_o no_o peace_n or_o fellowship_n with_o other_o during_o his_o life_n the_o council_n of_o toledo_n decree_v otherwise_o as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o decree_n 32._o cause_n question_v the_o sixth_o in_o the_o chapter_n placuit_fw-la to_o wit_n that_o a_o clergy_n man_n who_o wife_n do_v fall_v into_o adultery_n may_v keep_v she_o at_o home_n howbeit_o tie_v for_o certain_a year_n with_o a_o fast_v that_o shall_v serve_v to_o keep_v she_o in_o health_n but_o not_o that_o shall_v make_v she_o to_o die_v in_o the_o decree_n the_o 81._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n romanus_n the_o chapter_n presbyter_n and_o the_o chapter_n diaconus_fw-la adulterous_a minister_n be_v utterlie_o remoove_v from_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o eliberine_n council_n do_v give_v no_o peace_n unto_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacons_n be_v fall_v into_o adultery_n no_v not_o when_o they_o shall_v die_v no_o more_o also_o do_v they_o to_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n which_o have_v commit_v adultery_n more_o than_o once_o or_o twice_o they_o find_v also_o another_o kind_n of_o remedy_n but_o that_o be_v in_o case_n of_o suspicion_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr iudicijs_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n significasti_fw-la if_o a_o minister_n be_v suspect_v of_o adultery_n and_o the_o crime_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v purgation_n canonical_a purgation_n they_o use_v the_o canonical_a purgation_n namely_o that_o he_o shall_v find_v out_o other_o five_o minister_n which_o will_v affirm_v by_o oath_n that_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v this_o of_o he_o but_o such_o it_o behoove_v these_o minister_n to_o be_v as_o they_o may_v be_v sure_o will_v not_o forswear_v themselves_o they_o use_v also_o another_o thing_n namely_o that_o a_o adulterer_n shall_v not_o contract_v matrimony_n with_o the_o adulteress_n if_o her_o first_o husband_n have_v be_v dead_a but_o this_o they_o understand_v conditionallie_o if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v contract_v while_o the_o other_o spouse_n be_v alive_a or_o have_v conspire_v the_o death_n of_o the_o husband_n justinian_n a_o decree_n of_o justinian_n there_o rest_v to_o declare_v what_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o the_o decree_n of_o justinian_n as_o touch_v that_o that_o a_o woman_n after_o she_o be_v beat_v shall_v be_v drive_v into_o a_o monastery_n and_o not_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n as_o a_o adulterer_n i_o perceive_v not_o by_o what_o reason_n that_o may_v be_v prove_v the_o crime_n belong_v unto_o both_o as_o well_o to_o the_o man_n as_o to_o the_o woman_n why_o then_o be_v the_o punishment_n unlike_a the_o sin_n of_o the_o woman_n do_v no_o less_o stain_v the_o family_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o man_n yea_o and_o that_o more_o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o she_o be_v weak_a but_o if_o that_o reason_n shall_v take_v place_n no_o woman_n ought_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n wherefore_o under_o correction_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o man_n the_o inequality_n of_o the_o punishment_n can_v hardly_o be_v allow_v but_o i_o think_v he_o do_v this_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o bishop_n moreover_o he_o be_v blame_v insomuch_o as_o he_o ordain_v that_o if_o a_o husband_n shall_v not_o demand_v his_o wife_n again_o within_o two_o year_n or_o else_o that_o he_o die_v she_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o live_v continual_o in_o the_o monastery_n without_o marriage_n undoubted_o that_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o if_o she_o be_v incontinent_a as_o she_o give_v a_o token_n thereof_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o adultery_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o magistrate_n grant_v life_n unto_o a_o malefactor_n he_o ought_v also_o to_o grant_v those_o thing_n which_o perteine_a to_o a_o godly_a life_n otherwise_o what_o profit_n come_v by_o put_v she_o away_o unless_o it_o be_v to_o make_v her_o worse_a i_o have_v declare_v what_o i_o think_v concern_v the_o decree_n of_o justinian_n 30_o now_o let_v we_o come_v unto_o the_o other_o question_n namely_o man_n whether_o woman_n do_v sin_n in_o adultery_n more_o greevouslie_o than_o man_n whether_o a_o man_n and_o a_o woman_n do_v sin_n the_o one_o as_o gréevouslie_o as_o the_o other_o in_o the_o case_n of_o adultery_n and_o whether_o they_o both_o be_v to_o be_v drive_v unto_o one_o punishment_n so_o that_o in_o all_o respect_v they_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o thing_n equal_a unto_o very_o many_o it_o have_v not_o so_o seem_v good_a and_o that_o very_o for_o diverse_a cause_n they_o will_v have_v the_o case_n to_o be_v more_o gréevous_a touch_v woman_n than_o touch_v man_n and_o the_o cause_n which_o lead_v they_o thereto_o be_v these_o first_n because_o they_o perceive_v that_o the_o civil_a law_n do_v admit_v no_o accusation_n of_o the_o husband_n against_o his_o wife_n or_o of_o the_o father_n against_o his_o daughter_n but_o not_o so_o of_o the_o woman_n although_o she_o take_v her_o husband_n with_o the_o shameful_a act_n and_o have_v witness_n of_o the_o same_o as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o code_n within_o the_o title_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o first_o law_n wherefore_o they_o in_o old_a time_n account_v the_o fault_n to_o be_v more_o gréevous_a in_o the_o woman_n also_o they_o weigh_v this_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v take_v be_v straitwaie_o infamous_a but_o a_o man_n must_v be_v first_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v before_o that_o he_o be_v stain_v with_o infamy_n thirdlie_o it_o be_v sometime_o lawful_a before_o the_o law_n julia_n for_o husband_n to_o kill_v their_o wife_n as_o cato_n testify_v in_o the_o place_n above_o recite_v the_o law_n say_v he_o be_v to_o slay_v she_o that_o be_v take_v but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o she_o to_o touch_v thou_o once_o with_o her_o finger_n if_o she_o perceive_v thou_o to_o commit_v adultery_n hereunto_o plautus_n pleasant_o allude_v in_o the_o comedy_n mercator_n in_o very_a deed_n woman_n be_v here_o bind_v to_o over-streict_a a_o law_n as_o plutarch_n upon_o the_o life_n of_o romulus_n report_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o husband_n to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o adultery_n but_o not_o so_o on_o the_o contraie_v part_n which_o law_n seem_v also_o to_o like_a constantine_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o theodosian_a code_n de_fw-fr adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n placuit_fw-la let_v the_o husband_n say_v he_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o adultery_n but_o let_v not_o she_o do_v the_o same_o unto_o her_o husband_n though_o he_o be_v a_o effeminate_a person_n or_o a_o muliercularian_a for_o this_o term_n he_o use_v also_o they_o hereby_o consider_v of_o a_o inequality_n for_o that_o the_o woman_n if_o she_o keep_v ill_a company_n with_o a_o other_o man_n bondman_n she_o be_v make_v a_o bondwoman_n but_o it_o be_v not_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v so_o do_v unto_o man_n if_o they_o sin_v against_o bondwoman_n moreover_o they_o say_v that_o lust_n be_v always_o count_v to_o be_v more_o shameful_a in_o woman_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o crime_n shall_v be_v more_o gréevous_a in_o they_o further_o they_o suppose_v that_o a_o man_n although_o he_o live_v in_o matrimony_n if_o he_o keep_v ill_a company_n with_o other_o be_v loose_a or_o single_a woman_n as_o they_o call_v they_o he_o commit_v not_o adultery_n when_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n a_o woman_n be_v marry_v may_v have_v fellowship_n with_o no_o man_n but_o she_o fall_v into_o adultery_n and_o they_o allege_v that_o which_o suetonius_n write_v upon_o the_o life_n of_o vespasian_n that_o he_o cause_v the_o senate_n to_o decree_v that_o a_o fréewoman_n which_o join_v herself_o with_o bondman_n shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o bondage_n but_o decree_v not_o so_o touch_v man_n howbeit_o this_o and_o the_o five_o argument_n be_v all_o one_o there_o be_v a_o other_o argument_n take_v exit_fw-la orificiano_n out_o of_o the_o code_n in_o the_o law_n illustris_fw-la that_o it_o be_v a_o far_o more_o shameful_a thing_n for_o a_o woman_n to_o have_v bastard_n that_o be_v by_o one_o which_o be_v not_o a_o lawful_a husband_n than_o it_o be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v bastard_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la be_v allege_v which_o in_o the_o 7._o 24._o &_o 26._o chapter_n 13._o verse_n 26._o verse_n 13._o speak_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o custody_n which_o the_o father_n ought_v to_o have_v of_o his_o daughter_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o their_o chastity_n but_o speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o man_n child_n they_o also_o consider_v this_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n lose_v her_o dowry_n and_o
of_o the_o part_n of_o man_n body_n the_o fall_a sickness_n and_o sundry_a such_o miserable_a chance_n for_o the_o smooth_a and_o plain_a ground_n unto_o droonkard_n be_v a_o pit_n since_o they_o fall_v break_v their_o leg_n their_o arm_n and_o sometime_o their_o neck_n and_o be_v burn_v when_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o fire_n the_o liver_n be_v inflame_v with_o too_o much_o drink_v the_o head_n ak_v the_o member_n be_v make_v weak_a and_o do_v tremble_v the_o sense_n be_v corrupt_v the_o natural_a heat_n be_v overcome_v by_o overmuch_o wine_n the_o stomach_n be_v annoy_v with_o crudity_n and_o intolerable_a gréef_n while_o it_o be_v stuff_v and_o farse_v above_o measure_n the_o whole_a body_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n inflame_v and_o the_o thirst_n be_v augment_v droonkard_n lie_v grovel_v like_o block_n and_o so_o be_v béereve_v of_o their_o strength_n that_o neither_o head_n nor_o foot_n can_v do_v their_o office_n wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o the_o proverb_n 29._o verse_n 29._o to_o who_o be_v woe_n to_o who_o be_v sorrow_n to_o who_o be_v strife_n to_o who_o be_v sigh_v and_o to_o who_o be_v wound_n without_o cause_n or_o to_o who_o be_v the_o blearenesse_n of_o the_o eye_n even_o to_o they_o that_o tarry_v long_o at_o the_o wine_n and_o to_o they_o which_o go_v and_o seek_v mix_v wine_n look_v not_o upon_o the_o wine_n when_o it_o be_v red_a and_o when_o it_o show_v his_o colour_n in_o the_o cup_n and_o go_v down_o pleasant_o in_o the_o end_n it_o will_v bite_v like_o a_o serpent_n and_o put_v out_o his_o sting_n like_o a_o cockatrice_n thy_o eye_n shall_v look_v upon_o strange_a woman_n &_o thy_o hart_n shall_v speak_v lewd_a thing_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v like_o one_o that_o sleep_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o as_o he_o which_o sleep_v in_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mast_n of_o a_o ship_n they_o have_v strike_v i_o and_o it_o pain_v i_o not_o they_o have_v bruise_v i_o and_o i_o feel_v it_o not_o when_o i_o awake_v i_o will_v seek_v it_o again_o etc._n etc._n and_o behold_v how_o many_o punishment_n god_n bring_v upon_o droonkard_n esaie_n 12_o ver_fw-la 11_o &_o 12_o in_o his_o five_o chapter_n agree_v with_o solomon_n for_o he_o also_o say_v woe_n unto_o those_o which_o be_v mighty_a and_o strong_a to_o drink_v wine_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o droonkard_n regard_v not_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o consider_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n moreover_o to_o such_o man_n belong_v woe_n jerom._n jerom._n because_o as_o jerom_n upon_o that_o place_n write_v they_o be_v most_o unhappy_a who_o be_v occupy_v in_o droonkennesse_n gluttony_n and_o sundry_a pleasure_n from_o morning_n to_o night_n understand_v not_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o themselves_o neither_o consider_v wherefore_o they_o themselves_o be_v create_v do_v in_o a_o manner_n sleep_v out_o their_o whole_a life_n wherefore_o joel_n cry_v out_o unto_o they_o 5._o joel._n 2_o 5._o awake_v up_o you_o droonkard_n weep_v and_o howl_v all_o you_o that_o drink_v wine_n but_o droonkard_n be_v not_o waken_v by_o these_o cry_n for_o they_o do_v not_o only_a sleep_n but_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n bury_v virgil._n virgil._n wherefore_o virgil_n apt_o say_v of_o the_o city_n of_o troie_n that_o it_o be_v bury_v in_o wine_n and_o sleep_n 48_o but_o now_o must_v we_o see_v how_o much_o the_o soul_n itself_o or_o mind_n be_v hurt_v with_o droonkennesse_n wine_n how_o much_o the_o mind_n itself_o be_v hurt_v by_o wine_n droonkard_n be_v ofttimes_o strike_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o astonishment_n and_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v turn_v into_o madness_n they_o become_v like_o brute_n beast_n so_o that_o there_o seem_v to_o remain_v in_o they_o no_o understanding_n it_o be_v a_o gréevous_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o wound_v himself_o or_o to_o deprive_v himself_o of_o any_o member_n but_o to_o take_v away_o his_o own_o mind_n from_o himself_o without_o compulsion_n it_o be_v a_o evil_a intolerable_a in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o prophet_n ose_n it_o be_v justly_o write_v 11._o verse_n 11._o that_o wine_n and_o droonkennesse_n take_v away_o the_o hart_n and_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 2._o verse_n 2._o that_o wine_n and_o woman_n make_v wise_a man_n to_o fly_v from_o their_o profession_n so_o that_o they_o be_v no_o more_o their_o own_o man_n for_o they_o be_v withdraw_v from_o their_o office_n and_o virtue_n and_o do_v also_o fall_v from_o the_o right_a trade_n of_o life_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n in_o the_o 31._o chapter_n 38._o verse_n 38._o it_o be_v write_v that_o wine_n drunken_a with_o excess_n engender_v bitterness_n of_o mind_n with_o chide_n and_o despite_n droonkennesse_n increase_v the_o courage_n of_o a_o fool_n till_o he_o offend_v but_o it_o diminish_v his_o strength_n in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v a_o elegant_a antithesis_fw-la or_o contrary_a comparison_n namely_o that_o wine_n increase_v the_o courage_n and_o spirit_n and_o cause_v great_a audacity_n but_o it_o diminish_v and_o weaken_v the_o strength_n wherefore_o plato_n in_o his_o sixth_o dialog_n de_fw-fr iusto_fw-la plato_n plato_n at_o the_o beginning_n a_o droonkard_n say_v he_o have_v a_o tyrannical_a hart_n for_o he_o will_v rule_v all_o man_n as_o he_o listen_v and_o not_o by_o any_o reason_n and_o law_n droonkennesse_n also_o cause_v man_n to_o forget_v both_o law_n and_o right_n wherefore_o solomon_n say_v in_o the_o proverb_n 4._o prou._n 31_o 4._o that_o wine_n must_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o king_n lest_o peradventure_o they_o drink_v and_o forget_v the_o law_n that_o be_v make_v and_o alter_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o poor_a plato_n plato_n plato_n also_o write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr republica_n that_o droonkennesse_n may_v be_v suffer_v in_o any_o man_n rather_o than_o in_o a_o magistrate_n for_o a_o drunken_a man_n know_v not_o the_o ground_n whereon_o he_o stand_v if_o the_o magistrate_n be_v drunken_a then_o have_v the_o keeper_n need_v of_o a_o keeper_n this_o moreover_o be_v to_o be_v add_v that_o nothing_o be_v keep_v secret_a where_o droonkennesse_n reign_v because_o it_o discover_v not_o only_o the_o secret_a part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o also_o of_o the_o mind_n and_o in_o drink_v there_o be_v pour_v out_o word_n unshamefast_a foolish_a unapt_a and_o wicked_a so_o that_o horace_n horace_n horace_n describe_v the_o effect_n of_o droonkennesse_n say_v what_o be_v it_o that_o droonkennesse_n commit_v not_o it_o disclose_v thing_n secret_a it_o establish_v hope_n it_o thrust_v forward_o the_o unarmed_a man_n to_o battle_n it_o take_v away_o the_o burden_n from_o careful_a mind_n it_o teach_v art_n who_o have_v not_o full_a cup_n make_v eloquent_a and_o who_o have_v they_o not_o in_o extreme_a poverty_n make_v careless_a plato_n plato_n and_o plato_n in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la towards_o the_o end_n say_v thus_o when_o a_o man_n drink_v wine_n at_o the_o first_o it_o make_v he_o more_o cheerful_a afterward_o the_o more_o he_o drink_v the_o great_a and_o better_a hope_n he_o be_v in_o and_o feel_v himself_o strong_a then_o as_o though_o he_o be_v wise_a the_o man_n be_v fill_v with_o that_o confidence_n liberty_n and_o audacity_n that_o without_o fear_n he_o both_o say_v and_o do_v whatsoever_o please_v he_o plato_n plato_n the_o same_o plato_n in_o his_o sixth_o dialog_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la say_v he_o which_o be_v fill_v with_o wine_n be_v stir_v up_o with_o a_o madness_n as_o well_o of_o the_o mind_n as_o of_o the_o body_n and_o both_o draw_v other_o and_o be_v draw_v every_o where_o himself_o and_o a_o droonkard_n be_v like_o a_o man_n out_o of_o his_o wit_n seneca_n in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o natural_a question_n seneca_n seneca_n the_o 20._o chapter_n say_v that_o droonkennesse_n till_o it_o be_v dry_v up_o be_v madness_n and_o by_o too_o much_o heaviness_n be_v bring_v asleep_a and_o in_o his_o 60._o epistle_n to_o lucillus_n towards_o the_o end_n the_o droonkennesse_n of_o one_o hour_n do_v recompense_v his_o dissolute_a madness_n with_o the_o tediousness_n of_o a_o long_a time_n after_o and_o in_o the_o 84._o epistle_n droonkennesse_n draw_v out_o all_o vice_n and_o both_o kindle_v it_o and_o discover_v it_o it_o put_v away_o all_o shamefastness_n who_o property_n be_v to_o resist_v evil_a endeavour_n where_o too_o much_o power_n of_o wine_n possess_v the_o mind_n what_o evil_o so_o ever_o lay_v hide_v burst_v out_o droonkennesse_n make_v not_o vice_n but_o bring_v they_o to_o light_v in_o droonkennesse_n to_o the_o proud_a man_n pride_n increase_v to_o the_o cruel_a man_n cruelty_n to_o the_o envious_a man_n malice_n and_o all_o vice_n be_v discover_v and_o
sometime_o with_o safforne_o and_o so_o they_o beguile_v the_o beholder_n of_o they_o and_o with_o marvellous_a craft_n deceive_v they_o hereof_o come_v that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o common_a talk_n namely_o that_o a_o man_n cast_v a_o colour_n upon_o any_o thing_n when_o he_o deceive_v and_o it_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v utter_v in_o bargain_n in_o covenant_n and_o agréement_n without_o colour_n or_o counterfeit_n that_o be_v free_o in_o good_a faith_n absolute_o and_o plain_o these_o thing_n of_o the_o end_n the_o efficient_a and_o proper_a cause_n be_v the_o naughty_a desire_n of_o please_v cause_n the_o efficient_a cause_n the_o which_o sometime_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o pride_n and_o sometime_o by_o lust_n by_o pride_n because_o they_o will_v not_o have_v any_o to_o surpass_v they_o in_o beauty_n but_o will_v make_v a_o show_n to_o be_v far_o more_o beautiful_a than_o other_o by_o lust_n for_o that_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v beautiful_a more_fw-mi and_o more_o than_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o own_o natural_a favour_n have_v appoint_v and_o so_o to_o allure_v man_n to_o satisfy_v their_o lust_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n especial_o cyprian_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr velandis_fw-la virginibus_fw-la teach_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o inventor_n of_o such_o manner_n of_o trim_v for_o when_o as_o he_o think_v the_o evil_a angel_n have_v burn_v in_o the_o desire_n of_o woman_n and_o have_v abuse_v their_o body_n they_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o the_o licentious_a pleasure_n permit_v unto_o they_o make_v demonstration_n of_o these_o art_n and_o shameful_a ornament_n wherefore_o cyprian_n write_v that_o these_o be_v not_o the_o ornament_n which_o god_n make_v but_o those_o which_o the_o devil_n devise_v touch_v the_o cause_n efficient_a we_o have_v speak_v enough_o but_o the_o matter_n be_v nothing_o else_o in_o a_o manner_n matter_n the_o matter_n but_o filth_n to_o wit_n smoke_n soot_n foam_n and_o spittle_n and_o such_o thing_n for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o will_v loathe_v a_o man_n to_o touch_v they_o yea_o and_o sometime_o poison_n be_v mingle_v so_o that_o they_o with_o their_o counterfeit_a colour_n do_v not_o only_o wound_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o beholder_n but_o do_v also_o hurt_v their_o body_n of_o the_o form_n i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v because_o these_o thing_n be_v temper_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o way_n and_o look_v how_o many_o counterfeit_a woman_n there_o be_v almost_o so_o many_o kind_n of_o false_a colour_n there_o be_v they_o be_v say_v also_o to_o die_v their_o face_n and_o that_o be_v both_o to_o colour_v they_o and_o to_o deform_v they_o it_o be_v also_o say_v that_o this_o vice_n be_v great_a charge_n to_o woman_n than_o to_o man_n because_o a_o woman_n through_o her_o defile_a and_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v desirous_a of_o beauty_n and_o as_o the_o greek_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v desirous_a to_o be_v trim_a howbeit_o paulus_n the_o second_o of_o that_o name_n pope_n of_o rome_n face_n pope_n paul_n the_o second_o use_v to_o paint_v his_o face_n as_o platina_n write_v at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o shall_v come_v abroad_o abstein_v not_o from_o false_a colour_n even_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v seem_v of_o the_o more_o beautiful_a countenance_n as_o he_o be_v very_o tall_a of_o stature_n but_o how_o shameful_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o challenge_v himself_o to_o be_v let_v other_o man_n judge_v certeinlie_o the_o ethnic_a poet_n pronounce_v that_o it_o best_o become_v man_n to_o be_v careless_a of_o their_o beauty_n and_o again_o far_o from_o we_o may_v such_o young_a man_n be_v which_o be_v curious_o trim_v like_o woman_n for_o julius_n caesar_n be_v desirous_a to_o cover_v his_o baldness_n caesar_n julius_n caesar_n wherefore_o because_o of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v very_o many_o that_o the_o city_n have_v bestow_v upon_o he_o he_o most_o willing_o receive_v the_o laurall_a crown_n which_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o wear_v in_o a_o manner_n always_o and_o jerom_n write_v maximilla_n maximilla_n that_o maximilla_n the_o prophetess_n of_o montanus_n use_v stibium_fw-la which_o may_v note_v unto_o we_o by_o what_o spirit_n she_o be_v lead_v word_n the_o general_a word_n the_o general_a word_n of_o this_o vice_n be_v feign_v and_o also_o lease_v since_o they_o feign_v a_o countenance_n to_o themselves_o as_o they_o listen_v and_o they_o counterfeit_a beauty_n neither_o be_v wantonness_n far_o from_o it_o for_o when_o by_o nature_n they_o have_v not_o the_o worthiness_n of_o beauty_n they_o counterfeit_v the_o same_o as_o they_o can_v and_o we_o will_v not_o omit_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a which_o have_v sometime_o paint_v their_o face_n not_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v appear_v the_o better_a favour_a and_o fair_a but_o because_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v more_o cruel_a fierce_a and_o horrible_a to_o behold_v terrible_a the_o briton_n die_v their_o face_n to_o seem_v terrible_a as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o briton_n who_o die_v their_o face_n with_o a_o kind_n of_o herb_n like_a unto_o plantine_n as_o caesar_n report_v in_o his_o five_o book_n of_o his_o commentary_n and_o in_o india_n where_o be_v no_o small_a plenty_n of_o precious_a stone_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o make_v hollow_a place_n in_o their_o own_o flesh_n that_o in_o the_o hollowness_n thereof_o they_o may_v close_v in_o precious_a stone_n and_o that_o as_o well_o in_o the_o forehead_n as_o in_o the_o cheek_n these_o thing_n shall_v suffice_v for_o declare_v the_o nature_n of_o false_a colour_n now_o remain_v to_o be_v say_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v the_o same_o colour_n argument_n whereby_o some_o will_v prove_v it_o lawful_a to_o use_v false_a colour_n some_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a of_o who_o there_o be_v many_o schoolman_n who_o rather_o favour_n and_o make_v much_o of_o vice_n than_o pursue_v they_o and_o seek_v to_o weed_n they_o out_o first_o they_o allege_v certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o at_o the_o first_o view_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o their_o side_n secondlie_o they_o labour_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o reason_n 61_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o allege_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n 34._o verse_n 34._o he_o that_o be_v not_o marry_v care_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o he_o may_v please_v the_o lord_n but_o he_o that_o have_v marry_v a_o wife_n be_v careful_a for_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o he_o may_v please_v his_o wife_n the_o unmarried_a woman_n care_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o she_o may_v be_v holy_a both_o in_o body_n and_o in_o spirit_n but_o the_o marry_a woman_n care_v for_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o she_o may_v please_v her_o husband_n it_o be_v lawful_a therefore_o for_o woman_n to_o endeavour_v to_o please_v their_o own_o husband_n whereby_o they_o may_v retain_v they_o still_o to_o be_v content_a with_o their_o own_o wife_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v despise_v they_o they_o may_v easy_o incline_v to_o whoredom_n and_o adultery_n wherefore_o say_v they_o there_o be_v some_o good_a use_n even_o of_o counterfeit_n colour_n and_o further_o unto_o this_o purpose_n they_o draw_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o of_o timothy_n the_o second_o chapter_n 9_o verse_n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v in_o trim_a &_o comely_a apparel_n and_o they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v this_o when_o he_o give_v precept_n touch_v woman_n moreover_o they_o declare_v that_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n the_o twelve_o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v 23._o verse_n 23._o that_o upon_o those_o part_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v less_o honourable_a put_v we_o more_o honour_n on_o and_o our_o uncomelie_a part_n have_v more_o comeliness_n on_o and_o that_o therefore_o if_o any_o deformity_n be_v either_o in_o the_o countenance_n or_o in_o the_o eye_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o we_o shall_v deck_v they_o more_o costly_a and_o because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o very_o blind_a and_o blockish_a but_o that_o they_o see_v this_o to_o be_v a_o great_a stop_n unto_o they_o that_o man_n by_o these_o painting_n and_o counterfeit_a colour_n be_v provoke_v unto_o lust_n they_o have_v invent_v certain_a crafty_a and_o subtle_a shift_n that_o with_o they_o they_o may_v shadow_v and_o colour_v their_o error_n 62_o first_n they_o say_v that_o we_o fall_v into_o the_o false_a argument_n which_o be_v call_v a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o some_o respect_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v absolute_a it_o
by_o what_o reason_n they_o that_o defend_v this_o practice_n resist_v they_o that_o condemn_v it_o for_o see_v all_o thing_n that_o stir_v man_n unto_o lust_n be_v sin_n we_o think_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o provoke_v man_n unto_o concupiscence_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v that_o the_o case_n do_v not_o so_o stand_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n they_o also_o bring_v a_o instance_n of_o natural_a beauty_n the_o which_o out_o of_o doubt_n kindle_v naughty_a concupiscence_n with_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o none_o will_v say_v that_o the_o natural_a appéerance_n of_o beauty_n be_v to_o be_v defame_v as_o a_o sin_n some_o grant_n that_o sin_n may_v happen_v thereby_o howbeit_o not_o through_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o but_o by_o the_o circumstance_n adjoin_v that_o be_v if_o they_o go_v about_o to_o paint_v their_o face_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o will_v be_v unhonestlie_o love_v of_o those_o which_o behold_v they_o or_o else_o if_o they_o be_v so_o proud_a and_o haughty_a as_o by_o such_o mean_v they_o endeavour_v and_o be_v desirous_a to_o excel_v other_o woman_n in_o beauty_n then_o say_v they_o that_o evil_o créepe_v in_o by_o accidental_a mean_n and_o not_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o counterfeit_a colour_n wherefore_o they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o provocation_n unto_o wantonness_n namely_o that_o either_o it_o come_v according_a unto_o the_o natural_a condition_n or_o else_o through_o a_o lewdness_n of_o the_o intent_n and_o lust_n and_o in_o these_o they_o grant_v sin_n to_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o corrupt_a will_n and_o unhonest_a desire_n but_o they_o admit_v not_o that_o there_o be_v sin_n by_o the_o natural_a condition_n of_o the_o counterfeit_a colour_n and_o they_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o effect_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v all_o alike_o whether_o it_o procee_v from_o nature_n or_o come_v by_o art_n whereby_o they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o if_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o the_o natural_a beauty_n no_o more_o be_v it_o in_o the_o artificial_a beauty_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n they_o bring_v a_o similitude_n of_o the_o health_n that_o it_o be_v all_o after_o one_o nature_n and_o manner_n whether_o it_o grow_v by_o temperature_n and_o natural_a equality_n of_o humour_n or_o else_o if_o the_o same_o have_v be_v distemper_v be_v restore_v by_o the_o art_n of_o physician_n moreover_o they_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o cause_n and_o occasion_n and_o they_o say_v that_o colour_a face_n be_v not_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n and_o offence_n take_v of_o the_o beholder_n but_o be_v only_o a_o occasion_n and_o that_o thing_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o occasion_n but_o by_o their_o own_o proper_a nature_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v in_o a_o manner_n do_v nothing_o but_o we_o may_v be_v accuse_v of_o sin_n for_o even_o the_o very_o best_a thing_n may_v be_v occasion_n of_o fall_v unto_o sin_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o show_v either_o gold_n or_o silver_n or_o precious_a stone_n because_o there_o will_v be_v a_o occasion_n give_v of_o covet_v they_o and_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o beautiful_a woman_n ought_v never_o to_o step_v out_o of_o her_o house_n lest_o she_o shall_v be_v a_o occasion_n of_o wicked_a concupiscence_n wherefore_o let_v we_o reject_v say_v they_o the_o thing_n that_o come_v by_o accidental_a mean_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v occasion_n and_o let_v we_o only_o have_v respect_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v cause_n both_o just_a and_o by_o themselves_o and_o let_v we_o remove_v corrupt_a nature_n and_o naughty_a concupiscence_n as_o vice_n and_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o unhonest_a love_n and_o rage_a lust_n and_o let_v we_o not_o blame_v either_o feign_a colour_n or_o else_o natural_a beauty_n last_o they_o say_v that_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n have_v make_v the_o nature_n of_o colour_n and_o paint_n and_o that_o we_o can_v but_o grant_v every_o creature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v good_a and_o that_o therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o christian_a woman_n may_v use_v they_o free_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v allege_v by_o these_o man_n but_o we_o on_o the_o other_o part_n judge_v that_o they_o be_v not_o lawful_a the_o which_o we_o will_v prove_v as_o well_o by_o the_o scripture_n as_o by_o very_o likely_a argument_n part_n proof_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n 63_o paul_n when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v ill_o report_v of_o by_o the_o jew_n and_o by_o the_o false_a apostle_n 10._o gal._n 1_o 10._o the_o which_o they_o very_o oftentimes_o object_v against_o he_o but_o he_o answer_v if_o i_o will_v please_v man_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v christ_n servant_n by_o the_o which_o say_v he_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o we_o must_v not_o great_o strive_v to_o be_v well_o like_v of_o man_n but_o those_o woman_n which_o set_v a_o false_a colour_n upon_o themselves_o do_v labour_v all_o the_o way_n they_o can_v to_o please_v man_n if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o paul_n to_o please_v man_n in_o the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v not_o man_n invention_n but_o have_v their_o beginning_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o much_o less_o must_v we_o yield_v to_o these_o man_n in_o the_o thing_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o folly_n of_o man_n from_o naughty_a lust_n and_o as_o cyprian_n say_v from_o the_o devil_n himself_o further_o it_o be_v chéefelie_o commend_v to_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o shall_v embrace_v sincerity_n and_o truth_n for_o we_o ought_v to_o banquet_v in_o the_o unleavened_a bread_n of_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n as_o paul_n very_o well_o admonish_v we_o 8._o 1._o cor._n 5_o 8._o but_o in_o feign_a colour_n neither_o sincerity_n nor_o truth_n can_v take_v place_n and_o christ_n say_v in_o the_o five_o of_o matthew_n that_o 36._o verse_n 36._o man_n can_v make_v no_o not_o one_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n white_a or_o black_a but_o they_o which_o practise_v feign_a colour_n endeavour_n by_o their_o art_n to_o impugn_v that_o sentence_n when_o as_o they_o die_v their_o face_n and_o their_o hair_n with_o colour_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n also_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n 9_o 1._o tim._n 2_o 9_o forbid_v that_o woman_n shall_v dress_v themselves_o with_o curl_a hair_n with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o even_o thereof_o do_v peter_n in_o his_o epistle_n 3._o 1._o pet._n 3_o 3._o give_v warning_n wherefore_o the_o part_n of_o christian_n be_v to_o obey_v so_o great_a master_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o will_v say_v that_o they_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o counterfeit_v or_o colour_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v less_o naughtiness_n in_o gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n than_o in_o false_a colour_n which_o i_o alone_o do_v not_o speak_v but_o i_o have_v augustine_n for_o my_o warrant_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o possidius_n i_o have_v also_o chrysostome_n in_o the_o 31._o homily_n upon_o matthew_n now_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v that_o which_o be_v the_o less_o evil_a we_o must_v consider_v that_o they_o also_o remoove_v that_o which_o be_v count_v for_o the_o more_o gréevous_a fault_n also_o it_o be_v read_v in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 22._o chapter_n 5._o verse_n 5._o that_o god_n command_v that_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v clothe_v in_o woman_n apparel_n nor_o woman_n in_o man_n for_o because_o that_o be_v to_o hide_v the_o sex_n give_v by_o nature_n and_o to_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o a_o other_o sort_n than_o god_n do_v create_v they_o see_v therefore_o this_o dissimulation_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v do_v in_o garment_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v grant_v that_o we_o may_v feign_v and_o alter_v the_o form_n and_o favour_n of_o our_o countenance_n to_o these_o thing_n add_v that_o paul_n do_v forbid_v christian_a woman_n to_o go_v with_o their_o head_n uncover_v 6._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 6._o lest_o in_o very_a deed_n by_o the_o comeliness_n of_o their_o long_a hair_n they_o may_v be_v a_o occasion_n of_o offence_n unto_o man_n wherefore_o see_v he_o forbid_v that_o they_o shall_v lay_v before_o man_n eye_n the_o beauty_n of_o their_o hair_n how_o much_o rather_o must_v we_o understand_v that_o he_o forbid_v they_o to_o make_v that_o ostentation_n of_o beauty_n whereof_o they_o be_v destitute_a by_o nature_n and_o whereas_o we_o by_o the_o divine_a oracle_n be_v command_v not_o only_o to_o provide_v for_o our_o own_o salvation_n but_o for_o other_o man_n also_o how_o may_v there_o be_v safe_o use_v any_o feign_a colour_n which_o be_v sword_n poison_n and_o fiery_a flame_n unto_o young_a man_n who_o be_v
a_o drink_n or_o meat_n to_o be_v poison_v and_o shall_v see_v any_o man_n endeavour_n to_o eat_v or_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o can_v thou_o hold_v thy_o peace_n and_o sin_v not_o nay_o very_o thou_o not_o only_o hold_v thy_o peace_n but_o thou_o drink_v unto_o they_o the_o poison_n and_o liquor_n of_o death_n and_o lay_v it_o before_o man_n eye_n to_o be_v droonke_v further_o there_o be_v other_o such_o like_a saieng_n in_o cyprian_a which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o mind_n to_o pass_v over_o ambrose_n the_o four_o out_o of_o ambrose_n ambrose_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr virginibus_fw-la when_o he_o reprove_v this_o vice_n say_v that_o through_o counterfeit_n of_o the_o countenance_n they_o devise_v how_o to_o corrupt_v their_o chastity_n also_o he_o reprove_v their_o madness_n when_o he_o add_v while_o they_o stand_v in_o fear_n how_o their_o husband_n will_v judge_v of_o they_o they_o bewray_v their_o own_o judgement_n of_o themselves_o and_o they_o which_o indevor_n to_o please_v other_o first_o displease_v themselves_o for_o unless_o they_o have_v displease_v themselves_o and_o have_v be_v desirous_a of_o some_o thing_n in_o themselves_o they_o have_v not_o desire_v to_o better_v their_o face_n with_o feign_a colour_n afterward_o he_o add_v i_o think_v a_o certain_a hyperbolical_a speech_n since_o as_o the_o word_n sound_v it_o be_v not_o true_a for_o he_o say_v that_o outward_a adultery_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o body_n be_v more_o tolerable_a than_o adultery_n of_o the_o countenance_n because_o chastity_n be_v corrupt_v in_o this_o but_o nature_n in_o the_o other_o and_o in_o the_o sixth_o book_n he_o write_v it_o be_v a_o paint_n of_o vice_n not_o of_o comeliness_n of_o fraud_n not_o of_o simplicity_n it_o beguile_v and_o deceive_v and_o she_o that_o garnish_v herself_o on_o this_o sort_n content_v not_o her_o husband_n who_o know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v counterfeit_a and_o not_o his_o wife_n own_o chrysostome_n the_o five_o out_o of_o chrysostome_n 66_o and_o chrysostome_n in_o his_o 31._o homily_n upon_o matthew_n exhort_v the_o husband_n to_o terrify_v his_o wife_n from_o this_o vice_n by_o show_v unto_o she_o after_o a_o courteous_a manner_n that_o colour_a face_n please_v not_o he_o but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o utter_a enemy_n to_o they_o because_o the_o property_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o painting_n be_v rather_o to_o deface_v the_o well-favourednesse_a of_o woman_n than_o to_o beautify_v they_o and_o moreover_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a delight_n to_o see_v the_o face_n to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o god_n have_v create_v it_o when_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n a_o visage_n disorder_v from_o his_o own_o nature_n with_o red_a chalk_n and_o white_a lead_n be_v mislike_v and_o he_o show_v that_o that_o deformity_n come_v by_o this_o mean_n namely_o when_o the_o lip_n be_v die_v with_o purple_a they_o resemble_v the_o cruel_a grin_n of_o a_o bear_n if_o the_o overbrow_n be_v make_v black_a they_o will_v seem_v as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v rub_v against_o a_o pot_n in_o the_o kitchen_n the_o cheek_n white_v will_v show_v like_o the_o wall_n of_o a_o white_v sepulchre_n but_o if_o so_o be_v a_o man_n will_v say_v that_o some_o woman_n be_v so_o foul_a as_o without_o counterfeit_a colour_n they_o have_v no_o audacity_n to_o come_v abroad_o he_o answer_v that_o in_o vain_a they_o do_v use_v those_o thing_n because_o nature_n bear_v rule_v over_o art_n and_o if_o they_o be_v foul_a of_o favour_n they_o can_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o paint_v but_o that_o they_o will_v be_v know_v at_o length_n what_o they_o be_v furthermore_o deformity_n itself_o be_v void_a of_o rebuke_n but_o counterfeit_v colour_v be_v perceive_v be_v continual_o note_v with_o infamy_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 2_o verse_n 2_o despise_v thou_o not_o a_o man_n in_o his_o outward_a appeerance_n neither_o commend_v thou_o a_o man_n in_o his_o beauty_n wherefore_o a_o blemish_n or_o foulness_n of_o the_o face_n be_v not_o so_o great_o to_o be_v abhor_v for_o as_o he_o say_v if_o that_o a_o fair_a and_o a_o foul_a woman_n be_v both_o weigh_v in_o a_o balance_n and_o the_o discommodity_n weigh_v as_o well_o of_o the_o one_o as_o of_o the_o other_o we_o shall_v not_o easy_o perceive_v that_o the_o foul_a woman_n have_v more_o discommodity_n than_o the_o fair_a woman_n moreover_o if_o they_o can_v teach_v husband_n to_o love_v woman_n which_o be_v in_o such_o wise_a counterfeit_a they_o shall_v not_o allure_v they_o to_o themselves_o but_o rather_o set_v they_o forward_o unto_o harlot_n who_o be_v cunning_o instruct_v in_o such_o art_n he_o write_v that_o woman_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n which_o paint_v their_o face_n do_v even_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v sprinkle_v a_o gold_n image_n with_o mire_n and_o slime_n undoubted_o the_o form_n which_o be_v like_a unto_o god_n can_v be_v express_v in_o counterfeit_a painting_n and_o outward_a colour_n which_o colour_n assure_o be_v to_o be_v take_v of_o no_o other_o thing_n but_o of_o the_o stone_n call_v stibiu●s_n or_o of_o white_a lead_n or_o of_o the_o red_a paint_n call_v purpurisse_n see_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o counterfeit_v the_o ware_n which_o man_n buy_v and_o sell_v how_o much_o less_o to_o counterfeit_v the_o visage_n which_v god_n have_v frame_v and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o when_o fault_n be_v find_v with_o ware_n after_o it_o be_v buy_v the_o bargain_n be_v break_v and_o the_o seller_n compel_v by_o action_n at_o law_n to_o take_v his_o ware_n again_o no_o doubt_n but_o if_o any_o man_n buy_v a_o virgin_n meaning_n if_o she_o have_v be_v no_o virgin_n he_o will_v not_o have_v buy_v she_o if_o afterward_o he_o perceive_v she_o be_v deflower_v the_o bargain_n be_v void_a and_o a_o action_n be_v grant_v against_o the_o seller_n for_o the_o take_n of_o she_o again_o but_o do_v these_o woman_n think_v to_o escape_v unpunished_a for_o deceive_v of_o man_n who_o be_v beguile_v through_o counterfeit_a colour_n think_v they_o marry_v beautiful_a woman_n when_o they_o take_v deform_v wife_n 67_o jerom_n against_o heluid_n write_v jerom._n the_o sixth_o out_o of_o jerom._n this_o woman_n be_v paint_v out_o by_o a_o glass_n and_o to_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o creator_n she_o indevour_v to_o be_v fair_a than_o she_o be_v by_o birth_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o laeta_n touch_v the_o bring_n up_o of_o her_o daughter_n wherein_o he_o recite_v the_o history_n of_o a_o certain_a woman_n that_o be_v sore_o strike_v for_o anoint_v her_o daughter_n with_o paint_v colour_n call_v they_o which_o use_v such_o thing_n violator_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o furia_n of_o the_o keep_v of_o widowehood_n he_o show_v that_o counterfeit_v of_o the_o face_n with_o colour_n be_v a_o enemy_n unto_o repentance_n whereunto_o christian_n ought_v to_o apply_v themselves_o all_o their_o life_n long_o and_o he_o bring_v a_o example_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v a_o sinner_n who_o with_o her_o tear_n flow_v abundantlie_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o hair_n of_o her_o head_n she_o have_v they_o not_o say_v he_o burnish_a with_o the_o stone_n call_v stibium_fw-la moreover_o he_o call_v white_a lead_n and_o the_o red_a paint_n call_v purpurissa_n the_o fire_n of_o young_a man_n the_o nourishment_n of_o lust_n and_o the_o token_n of_o a_o unchaste_a mind_n augustine_n the_o seven_o out_o of_o augustine_n but_o to_o augustine_n i_o come_v who_o purpose_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o possidius_n he_o have_v propound_v a_o question_n unto_o he_o whether_o all_o kind_n of_o ornament_n shall_v be_v forbid_v unto_o woman_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o will_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v too_o forward_o a_o judgement_n touch_v the_o ornament_n of_o gold_n and_o of_o precious_a apparel_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o shall_v forbid_v they_o unto_o all_o woman_n but_o he_o say_v to_o be_v colour_v with_o painting_n whereby_o a_o woman_n may_v appear_v either_o white_a or_o red_a be_v a_o adulterous_a and_o crafty_a deceit_n whereby_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o husband_n themselves_o will_v not_o be_v deceive_v herby_n we_o easy_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o to_o use_v such_o painting_n see_v they_o be_v counterfeit_a deceit_n and_o not_o only_o counterfeit_v but_o also_o pernicious_a because_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o deceive_v the_o beholder_n moreover_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o vicious_a thing_n in_o a_o woman_n that_o she_o will_v beguile_v a_o man_n thus_o much_o augustine_n whereunto_o i_o add_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o paul_n that_o we_o must_v not_o only_o eschew_v evil_a but_o also_o the_o very_a show_n of_o evil_a but_o
in_o false_a colour_n there_o be_v so_o manifest_a a_o show_n of_o evil_a as_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v undoubted_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o colour_n with_o stibium_fw-la be_v never_o take_v in_o good_a part_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o jeremie_n 40._o verse_n 30._o verse_n 40._o and_o in_o the_o 23._o of_o ezechiel_n when_o god_n bring_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o jew_n into_o hatred_n he_o use_v the_o metaphor_n of_o whoredom_n and_o say_v that_o he_o will_v bring_v the_o enemy_n against_o that_o people_n who_o for_o their_o sake_n have_v before_o paint_v their_o face_n with_o stibium_fw-la to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v commit_v shameful_a whoredom_n with_o they_o see_v therefore_o the_o scripture_n bear_v record_n that_o these_o colour_n be_v procure_v for_o whoredom_n sake_n we_o must_v not_o give_v ear_n unto_o fond_a paint_a woman_n which_o protest_v that_o they_o have_v a_o chaste_a hart_n and_o mind_n use_v a_o conclusion_n of_o this_o question_n and_o what_o ornament_n woman_n may_v use_v now_o that_o we_o have_v bring_v testimony_n enough_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o plenty_n and_o sufficient_a reason_n out_o of_o the_o father_n what_o must_v we_o then_o conclude_v not_o that_o every_o ornament_n shall_v be_v utterlie_o take_v away_o from_o woman_n let_v they_o in_o god_n name_n endeavour_n to_o please_v their_o own_o husband_n honest_o let_v they_o not_o be_v altogether_o unhandsome_a and_o foulie_o attire_v let_v they_o wash_v away_o uncleanlinesse_n let_v they_o cleanse_v away_o filth_n but_o let_v they_o not_o be_v paint_v with_o white_a lead_n with_o purpurisse_n with_o stibium_fw-la and_o final_o with_o any_o counterfeit_a colour_n for_o that_o be_v to_o put_v on_o vizard_n and_o to_o play_v the_o masker_n to_o beguile_v to_o deceive_v and_o also_o to_o stir_v up_o lust_n jewel_n what_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v concern_v gold_n ornament_n and_o jewel_n but_o what_o my_o judgement_n be_v concern_v gold_n jewel_n &_o sumptuous_a garment_n i_o do_v not_o purpose_n at_o this_o time_n to_o have_v dispute_v howbeit_o because_o they_o be_v thing_n near_o agree_v together_o i_o will_v brief_o entreat_v somewhat_o of_o they_o by_o the_o say_n of_o augustine_n even_o now_o allege_v it_o appear_v that_o those_o ornament_n be_v not_o rash_o to_o be_v condemn_v and_o utterlie_o to_o be_v take_v away_o for_o there_o be_v diverse_a degree_n and_o sundry_a state_n of_o man_n there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n not_o only_o common_a people_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o in_o honour_n but_o there_o be_v also_o emperor_n caesar_n king_n queen_n prince_n lord_n and_o lady_n unto_o who_o after_o a_o sort_n those_o ornament_n be_v necessary_a 68_o howbeit_o thou_o will_v say_v 3._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 9_o 1._o pet._n 3_o 3._o that_o peter_n and_o also_o paul_n do_v seem_v to_o have_v forbid_v these_o thing_n but_o what_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o be_v we_o to_o consider_v of_o woman_n the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o reprove_v the_o pride_n of_o woman_n their_o mind_n be_v to_o withdraw_v christian_n woman_n from_o vanity_n pride_n superfluity_n and_o too_o much_o sumptuousnesse_n and_o to_o lead_v they_o away_o from_o that_o opinion_n wherein_o they_o judge_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o proper_a true_a and_o principal_a ornament_n of_o woman_n so_o that_o they_o be_v adorn_v on_o this_o wise_a think_v that_o no_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v seek_v for_o as_o though_o in_o these_o ornament_n consist_v the_o whole_a sum_n and_o effect_n of_o all_o wherefore_o they_o forbid_v these_o thing_n not_o absolute_o but_o by_o way_n of_o comparison_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o when_o the_o same_o paul_n say_v 12._o ephes_n 6_o 12._o that_o our_o strive_n be_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n deni_v not_o but_o that_o we_o must_v also_o strive_v against_o these_o thing_n but_o he_o show_v that_o these_o strive_n be_v very_o small_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o power_n of_o our_o adversary_n which_o continual_o assault_v us._n and_o even_o as_o when_o christ_n in_o talk_v of_o john_n say_v ●_o matth._n 11_o ●_o that_o they_o which_o be_v clothe_v in_o soft_a garment_n be_v in_o king_n house_n take_v not_o soft_a and_o precious_a garment_n out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o show_v for_o who_o they_o be_v meet_v moreover_o we_o must_v consider_v unto_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v namely_o unto_o they_o of_o small_a estimation_n to_o the_o common_a sort_n to_o those_o which_o be_v obscure_a and_o abject_n see_v the_o church_n for_o the_o most_o part_n at_o that_o time_n consist_v of_o such_o wherefore_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 26._o 1._o cor._n 1_o 26._o brethren_n have_v a_o eye_n unto_o your_o call_n not_o many_o noble_a man_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o intent_n therefore_o that_o christian_a woman_n shall_v avoid_v superfluity_n and_o too_o much_o sumptuousnesse_n and_o not_o use_v such_o ornament_n for_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o think_v that_o they_o may_v use_v they_o as_o they_o listen_v they_o call_v they_o back_o from_o those_o thing_n that_o leave_v their_o affection_n towards_o they_o they_o shall_v seek_v for_o better_a the_o which_o will_v be_v overlong_o now_o to_o recite_v for_o they_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o very_a writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o almost_o in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n beside_o these_o thing_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a order_v we_o will_v answer_v the_o argument_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o our_o adversary_n face_n a_o confutation_n of_o their_o argument_n which_o allow_v woman_n to_o paint_v their_o face_n 69_o first_o out_o of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o first_o chapter_n 34._o verse_n 34._o it_o be_v allege_v that_o marry_a woman_n do_v care_n for_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v please_v their_o husband_n but_o this_o we_o deny_v not_o let_v they_o have_v a_o care_n to_o please_v their_o husband_n so_o they_o do_v it_o without_o dissimulation_n and_o lie_v and_o let_v they_o think_v of_o themselves_o whether_o they_o will_v be_v so_o deceive_v and_o beguile_v as_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o comely_a and_o well_o favour_v man_n they_o shall_v marry_v he_o that_o be_v foul_a and_o deform_a they_o say_v also_o that_o if_o man_n shall_v be_v alienate_v from_o their_o wife_n for_o deformity_n sake_n they_o may_v easy_o fall_v into_o adultery_n héereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o honest_a husband_n by_o false_a painting_n be_v rather_o alienate_v than_o win_v unto_o their_o wife_n moreover_o if_o they_o abstain_v not_o from_o adultery_n for_o the_o fear_n that_o they_o have_v of_o god_n and_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o word_n neither_o yet_o be_v move_v by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n and_o terrify_v with_o gréevous_a peril_n much_o less_o will_v they_o stay_v for_o such_o counterfeit_a paint_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n unto_o timothy_n 9_o 1._o tim._n 2_o 9_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o woman_n to_o go_v in_o comely_a apparel_n it_o be_v not_o right_o expound_v by_o our_o adversary_n because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o that_o place_n be_v modest_a and_o honest_a which_o the_o word_n follow_v do_v declare_v for_o it_o be_v afterward_o add_v in_o shamefastness_n but_o in_o feign_a colour_n there_o be_v no_o shamefastness_n nay_o rather_o there_o be_v intolerable_a impudency_n furthermore_o there_o be_v a_o place_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 23_o 1._o co._n 12_o 23_o that_o upon_o those_o part_n which_o be_v most_o unhonest_a put_v we_o more_o honesty_n on_o whereupon_o it_o be_v conclude_v that_o if_o any_o blemish_n be_v in_o the_o body_n or_o in_o the_o countenance_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o adorn_v and_o to_o colour_v the_o same_o first_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o mind_n the_o apostle_n have_v when_o he_o write_v these_o thing_n in_o very_a deed_n he_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o weak_a sort_n in_o the_o church_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o unworthy_a and_o obscure_a member_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v reject_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n but_o rather_o cherish_v and_o adorn_v the_o similitude_n be_v draw_v from_o hence_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o have_v be_v so_o use_v in_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o honour_n to_o be_v put_v upon_o those_o part_n which_o be_v less_o honest_a it_o can_v apperteine_v unto_o counterfeit_a colour_n for_o they_o be_v no_o ornament_n but_o rather_o feign_a devise_n and_o deceit_n i_o pray_v you_o moreover_o what_o honour_n be_v there_o give_v unto_o the_o part_n that_o be_v less_o honest_a even_o to_o cover_v they_o for_o we_o provide_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v
no_o doubt_n but_o that_o every_o faithful_a person_n fulfil_v the_o law_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o charity_n which_o he_o have_v but_o yet_o we_o must_v remember_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o there_o be_v none_o in_o this_o life_n that_o have_v perfect_a and_o absolute_a charity_n for_o if_o any_o man_n can_v attain_v thereunto_o he_o can_v not_o profit_v any_o further_o howbeit_o that_o this_o matter_n may_v the_o more_o evident_o appear_v let_v we_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o john_n herein_o say_v he_o we_o know_v his_o love_n 16_o 1._o john_n 3_o 16_o for_o that_o he_o give_v his_o life_n for_o we_o and_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v our_o life_n for_o our_o brethren_n even_o as_o he_o give_v he_o these_o word_n sufficient_o declare_v that_o no_o ordinary_a kind_n of_o love_n be_v require_v of_o we_o but_o even_o the_o same_o which_o bestow_v the_o life_n for_o other_o man_n and_o the_o same_o not_o after_o any_o sort_n but_o in_o such_o wise_a as_o christ_n himself_o give_v it_o but_o there_o be_v none_o which_o attain_v unto_o the_o charity_n of_o christ_n though_o the_o same_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v require_v and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o bond_n do_v arise_v through_o no_o other_o mean_n but_o by_o the_o law_n neither_o be_v that_o place_n to_o the_o galathian_o any_o other_o way_n to_o be_v expound_v namely_o 2._o gala._n 6_o 2._o bear_v you_o one_o a_o other_o burden_n and_o so_o you_o shall_v fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o bear_v those_o thing_n even_o as_o we_o will_v we_o to_o be_v bear_v and_o that_o as_o christ_n have_v through_o bear_v they_o but_o this_o none_o do_v perform_v héerunto_o also_o may_v that_o be_v say_v which_o be_v bring_v before_o touch_v christ_n love_n the_o which_o may_v be_v join_v to_o our_o love_n and_o accept_v by_o god_n as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v fulfil_v 5._o 1._o john_n 2_o 4_o and_o 5._o it_o be_v also_o object_v that_o the_o same_o john_n write_v that_o he_o which_o love_v god_n keep_v his_o commandment_n but_o we_o must_v add_v that_o so_o much_o shall_v the_o keep_v of_o god_n commandment_n be_v as_o the_o love_n of_o god_n have_v be_v but_o see_v we_o have_v not_o that_o love_n perfect_a therefore_o we_o keep_v not_o the_o commandment_n full_o and_o perfect_o howbeit_o after_o these_o thing_n they_o add_v that_o the_o same_o apostle_n affirm_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o be_v easy_a 3._o 1._o john_n 5_o 3._o but_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v if_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v anew_o they_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v much_o less_o easy_a again_o if_o they_o be_v offer_v unto_o person_n regenerate_v they_o be_v not_o easy_o keep_v according_a as_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o law_n but_o they_o may_v be_v call_v easy_a see_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a with_o such_o and_o do_v communicate_v his_o righteousness_n with_o they_o for_o by_o the_o same_o the_o want_n of_o our_o work_n be_v supply_v and_o while_o we_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n we_o obey_v willing_o and_o with_o a_o good_a courage_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v make_v both_o delectable_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v keep_v i_o mean_v according_a to_o the_o portion_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n do_v bestow_v in_o the_o selfsame_o sense_n must_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v understand_v 30._o mat._n 11_o 30._o wherein_o he_o say_v my_o yoke_n be_v pleasant_a and_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a but_o the_o commandment_n as_o they_o be_v express_v in_o the_o law_n do_v through_o our_o weakness_n rather_o bring_v malediction_n than_o plesantnesse_n unless_o they_o be_v perform_v of_o we_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o be_v describe_v 10_o furthermore_o that_o be_v bring_v against_o we_o which_o christ_n say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n when_o you_o have_v do_v all_o these_o thing_n say_v with_o yourselves_o 10._o luk._n 17_o 10._o that_o you_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n but_o that_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o obedience_n begoone_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o wherefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o the_o pelagian_n the_o eight_o chapter_n write_v that_o the_o perfection_n of_o saint_n must_v always_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n and_o capacity_n that_o they_o have_v in_o this_o life_n this_o moreover_o they_o urge_v that_o the_o scripture_n diverse_a time_n do_v call_v some_o man_n perfect_a for_o paul_n say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a 6_o 1._o cor._n 2_o 6_o and_o to_o the_o philippian_n we_o read_v so_o many_o of_o you_o as_o be_v perfect_a judge_v all_o one_o thing_n 15_o phil._n 3_o 15_o whereunto_o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a measure_n of_o perfection_n perfect_a how_o some_o man_n may_v be_v call_v perfect_a whereby_o the_o godly_a man_n do_v acknowledge_v their_o imperfection_n &_o be_v not_o deceive_v therein_o which_o no_o less_o right_o than_o prudentlie_o augustine_n teach_v in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o pelagius_n and_o in_o his_o first_o book_n 7._o chap._n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la &_o remissione_n also_o they_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v call_v perfect_a which_o do_v imitate_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n who_o send_v rain_n upon_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a and_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o shine_v as_o well_o upon_o the_o good_a as_o the_o bad_a other_o undoubted_o be_v call_v just_a which_o apt_o give_v ear_n unto_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o which_o sort_n the_o corinthian_n as_o yet_o be_v not_o the_o hebrews_n indeed_o be_v such_o &c_n heb._n 6_o 1_o &c_n &c_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o imperfection_n it_o behoove_v the_o saint_n not_o only_o to_o acknowledge_v and_o feel_v but_o also_o to_o confess_v the_o same_o but_o jerom_n in_o his_o first_o dialog_n against_o the_o pelagian_n say_v that_o we_o be_v then_o just_a when_o we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v sinner_n and_o unto_o cresiphon_n he_o also_o write_v this_o only_o be_v a_o perfection_n in_o man_n if_o they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v unperfect_a barnard_n in_o his_o 50._o and_o 51._o sermon_n upon_o the_o canticle_n write_v very_o elegant_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o so_o do_v augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o xystus_n and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n but_o the_o pelagian_n when_o they_o withstand_v augustine_n as_o we_o read_v in_o his_o book_n against_o their_o epistle_n the_o five_o chapter_n say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o put_v any_o difference_n between_o most_o wicked_a man_n and_o saint_n but_o by_o comparison_n because_o he_o affirm_v that_o just_a man_n be_v therefore_o saint_n because_o they_o sin_v less_o than_o evil_a man_n héereunto_o that_o godly_a man_n answer_v work_n wicked_a man_n and_o saint_n do_v differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o by_o faith_n but_o not_o by_o work_n that_o wicked_a man_n and_o saint_n do_v differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o godly_a do_v believe_v in_o christ_n by_o who_o if_o they_o fall_v they_o receive_v forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v also_o lighten_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n but_o the_o wicked_a beléeve_v not_o in_o christ_n do_v altogether_o lie_v in_o their_o sin_n whereof_o they_o neither_o repent_v nor_o yet_o receive_v forgiveness_n of_o the_o same_o the_o same_o father_n also_o in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la &_o remissione_n the_o seven_o chapter_n object_v against_o himself_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n namely_o that_o 4_o verse_n 3._o 4_o the_o 144000._o saint_n which_o follow_v the_o lamb_n be_v virgin_n and_o defile_v not_o themselves_o with_o woman_n &_o that_o in_o their_o mouth_n there_o be_v find_v no_o guile_n he_o answer_v to_o himself_o that_o such_o be_v therefore_o unblameable_a because_o they_o justly_o reproove_v themselves_o and_o in_o their_o mouth_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n because_o they_o do_v not_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v without_o sin_n for_o if_o they_o have_v say_v that_o they_o have_v be_v without_o sin_n they_o have_v be_v find_v in_o a_o lie_n the_o same_o father_n go_v further_a &_o in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n object_v against_o himself_o a_o place_n out_o of_o luke_n where_o it_o be_v write_v 6_o luke_n 1_o 6_o that_o zacharie_n and_o elizabeth_n be_v just_a before_o god_n walk_v without_o reproof_n before_o he_o in_o all_o the_o precept_n and_o iustification_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o which_o word_n
cornelius_n the_o centurion_n even_o then_o when_o he_o be_v in_o warrior_n state_n hear_v that_o his_o prayer_n and_o alm_n deed_n please_v god_n augustine_n for_o this_o purpose_n oftentimes_o cit_v that_o say_n 21._o mat._n 22._o 21._o give_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n but_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o give_v for_o any_o other_o use_n but_o for_o the_o payment_n of_o wage_n unto_o the_o soldier_n and_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o commonweal_n and_o paul_n when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o prince_n bear_v the_o sword_n and_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n 6._o rom._n 13._o 6._o therefore_o say_v he_o give_v custom_n unto_o who_o custom_n and_o tribute_n unto_o who_o tribute_n belong_v for_o money_n be_v the_o strength_n of_o war_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a doubtless_o which_o he_o say_v that_o a_o prince_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n unto_o wrath_n 4._o ibid._n ver_fw-la 4._o and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o a_o prince_n may_v chastise_v seditious_a citizen_n at_o home_n why_o may_v he_o not_o also_o suppress_v a_o outward_a enemy_n if_o he_o do_v violence_n and_o vex_v and_o waste_v the_o common_a weal_n god_n oftentimes_o warn_v prince_n that_o they_o shall_v reléeve_v the_o oppress_a the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n and_o sometime_o it_o happen_v that_o this_o can_v be_v do_v without_o war_n by_o this_o mean_n also_o there_o be_v respect_n have_v though_o not_o to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o enemy_n yet_o to_o their_o profit_n for_o even_o as_o a_o father_n of_o charity_n chasten_v and_o punish_v his_o child_n so_o ought_v a_o prince_n to_o restrain_v the_o fierceness_n of_o a_o enemy_n not_o of_o hatred_n but_o of_o christian_a charity_n and_o to_o benefit_n he_o whether_o he_o will_v or_o no_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o licentiousness_n of_o sin_v be_v diminish_v in_o he_o and_o augustine_n unto_o boniface_n say_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unhappy_a than_o the_o happiness_n of_o sinner_n further_o god_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n 1._o num._n 10._o 9_o deut._n 20._o 1._o make_v law_n concern_v the_o take_n in_o hand_n and_o make_n of_o war_n but_o evil_a thing_n must_v rather_o be_v take_v quite_o away_o than_o adorn_v with_o law_n in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 20._o 5._o verse_n 5._o chapter_n god_n command_v they_o to_o be_v discharge_v out_o of_o the_o host_n which_o either_o build_v that_o year_n or_o plant_v or_o marry_v wife_n and_o they_o which_o be_v of_o a_o faint_a courage_n lest_o they_o shall_v trouble_v their_o brethren_n he_o command_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v present_a and_o to_o instruct_v and_o warn_v the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v of_o valiant_a courage_n that_o god_n will_v be_v with_o they_o and_o that_o although_o they_o shall_v see_v themselves_o to_o be_v exceed_v in_o number_n and_o multitude_n yet_o not_o to_o have_v faint_a heart_n but_o to_o cast_v their_o hope_n upon_o god_n he_o also_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o cut_v down_o their_o fruit_n tree_n upon_o their_o enemy_n soil_n in_o the_o 10._o 9_o num._n 10._o 9_o chapter_n of_o numeri_fw-la he_o command_v two_o trumpet_n to_o be_v make_v wherewith_o they_o shall_v sound_v and_o especial_o in_o war_n that_o those_o be_v hear_v they_o shall_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o be_v before_o god_n in_o the_o 31._o chapter_n of_o numeri_fw-la 2._o verse_n 2._o he_o command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v seek_v for_o a_o revenge_n of_o the_o madianites_fw-la because_o that_o through_o the_o make_n common_a of_o their_o young_a woman_n they_o have_v circumvent_v the_o israelite_n in_o their_o journey_n again_o he_o command_v also_o that_o that_o pray_v shall_v be_v common_a 27._o ib._n ver_fw-la 27._o aswell_o to_o the_o soldier_n which_o fight_v against_o the_o enemy_n as_o unto_o they_o which_o they_o have_v appoint_v to_o keep_v the_o fardel_n and_o unto_o the_o levite_n and_o that_o some_o part_n shall_v be_v employ_v unto_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o this_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o by_o no_o mean_n it_o have_v be_v lawful_a to_o make_v war_n in_o the_o 17._o 9_o verse_n 9_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la when_o the_o amalachites_n have_v do_v violence_n unto_o the_o israelite_n moses_n command_v josue_n to_o take_v muster_n and_o to_o fight_v against_o the_o enemy_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n unto_o god_n aaron_n and_o hurre_o sustain_a his_o weary_a arm_n 16._o exo._n 17._o 16._o and_o god_n swear_v that_o the_o war_n of_o the_o amalachites_n with_o they_o shall_v be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o 31._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n god_n also_o promise_v victory_n unto_o he_o 6._o verse_n 6._o 8._o levi._n 26._o 8._o one_o of_o you_o say_v he_o shall_v chase_v a_o thousand_o and_o ten_o ten_o thousand_o josua_n when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n 13._o josua_n 5._o 13._o see_v the_o lord_n arm_v and_o shake_v a_o draw_v sword_n and_o hear_v he_o promise_n that_o he_o will_v be_v the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o that_o war_n in_o the_o 13._o of_o deuteronomium_n 12_o deut._n 13._o 12_o if_o any_o city_n turn_v to_o idolatry_n god_n command_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v overthrow_v and_o that_o the_o pray_v shall_v be_v burn_v and_o when_o in_o the_o first_o of_o judge_n 1._o verse_n 1._o war_n be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n against_o the_o hevite_n and_o chananite_n and_o jebusite_n they_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n what_o tribe_n shall_v first_o ascend_v and_o he_o answer_v the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n david_n in_o the_o 144._o psalm_n 1._o psal_n 144._o 1._o who_o teach_v my_o hand_n to_o fight_v and_o my_o finger_n to_o the_o battle_n but_o god_n teach_v not_o evil_a and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a emphasis_n in_o that_o which_o he_o say_v my_o hand_n for_o he_o be_v a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o make_v war_n by_o his_o own_o counsel_n but_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n 5_o neither_o must_v those_o war_n be_v unspoken_a of_o which_o the_o maccabee_n make_v for_o religion_n and_o for_o the_o commonweal_n 8._o eccle._n 3._o 8._o ecclesiastes_n say_v there_o be_v a_o time_n of_o war_n and_o there_o be_v a_o time_n of_o peace_n but_o there_o be_v no_o time_n for_o a_o thing_n unjust_a and_o forbid_a etc._n 1._o sam._n 10._o 1._o etc._n etc._n while_o amnon_n stand_v to_o his_o promise_n david_n maintain_v the_o league_n and_o send_v ambassador_n unto_o he_o but_o when_o as_o he_o have_v reprochfullie_o handle_v the_o ambassador_n of_o david_n the_o war_n begin_v zacharie_n the_o 10._o 5._o verse_n 5._o chapter_n they_o shall_v fight_v because_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v with_o they_o yea_o and_o they_o be_v call_v the_o war_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o so_o say_v saul_n unto_o david_n 28._o 1._o sa._n 18._o 17_o 1._o sa._n 25._o 28._o thou_o shall_v make_v the_o lord_n war_n and_o abigail_n thou_o say_v he_o fight_v the_o lord_n battle_n and_o in_o the_o 2._o book_n of_o paralipomenon_n the_o 20._o 15._o verse_n 15._o chapter_n when_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n have_v gather_v his_o power_n against_o josaphat_n and_o he_o open_o make_v his_o prayer_n unto_o the_o lord_n jahaziel_n the_o levite_n be_v inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o say_v he_o be_v the_o war_n of_o god_n not_o of_o man_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n 17_o acts._n 23._o 17_o paul_n will_v by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o soldier_n be_v bring_v unto_o caesaria_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v take_v hold_n of_o by_o the_o jew_n 33._o heb._n 11._o 33._o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v the_o saint_n by_o faith_n subdue_v kingdom_n wherefore_o war_n may_v be_v a_o exercise_n of_o faith_n and_o lest_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o that_o place_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o spiritual_a fight_n it_o be_v add_v they_o overthrewe_v the_o army_n of_o alien_n 34._o verse_n 34._o augustine_n unto_o boniface_n the_o warrior_n thus_o write_v thou_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o thy_o strength_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o thou_o put_v on_o armour_n thou_o shall_v remember_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o thou_o use_v they_o not_o against_o he_o that_o give_v thou_o they_o beside_o in_o the_o make_n of_o war_n there_o be_v need_n of_o patience_n in_o the_o endure_a of_o labour_n a_o stout_a heart_n in_o peril_n a_o diligence_n in_o the_o enterprise_v of_o thing_n a_o speediness_n in_o perform_v and_o a_o counsel_n in_o provide_v which_o thing_n undoubted_o can_v be_v have_v without_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o augustine_n add_v that_o peace_n be_v of_o will_n and_o war_n of_o necessity_n wherefore_o we_o
feast_n day_n of_o the_o jew_n 376._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o solemnize_v the_o birth_n day_n of_o any_o man_n pag._n 377._o chapter_n viii_o the_o five_o precept_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o superior_n pag._n 377._o a_o comparison_n between_o the_o duty_n of_o parent_n and_o magistrate_n ibidem_fw-la what_o dominion_n the_o husband_n have_v over_o the_o wife_n pag._n 379._o of_o ambition_n pag._n 381._o of_o the_o desire_n of_o praise_n pag._n 382._o of_o flattery_n pag._n 383._o chapter_n ix_o the_o sixth_o precept_n of_o friendship_n 384._o of_o homicide_n pag._n 385._o whether_o elias_n do_v well_o in_o kill_v of_o the_o baalite_n pag._n 386._o of_o parricide_n pag._n 390._o of_o sword-plaie_a ibidem_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o pag._n 391._o of_o repel_v of_o violence_n pag._n 397._o of_o curssing_n imprecation_n and_o ban_n ibidem_fw-la how_o far_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o rejoice_v in_o our_o enemy_n overthrow_n pag._n 400._o of_o a_o curse_n &_o shun_v of_o revenge_n 403._o *_o of_o the_o affect_n in_o general_a pag._n 405._o *_o of_o shamefastness_n pag._n 411._o *_o of_o temperance_n pag._n 412._o of_o mercy_n and_o nemesis_n ibidem_fw-la of_o cruelty_n envy_n emulation_n and_o revenge_n pag._n 414._o chapter_n x_o the_o seven_o precept_n of_o not_o commit_v adultery_n pag._n 418._o of_o matrimony_n and_o concubine_n ibid._n of_o polygamy_n pag._n 420._o of_o barrenness_n pag._n 430._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o child_n to_o marry_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o parent_n pag._n 431._o of_o ravine_n or_o violent_a take_n away_o 437._o whether_o marriage_n be_v lawful_a in_o person_n of_o sundry_a religion_n pag._n 442._o of_o degree_n forbid_v in_o marriage_n pag._n 447._o dispensation_n for_o marriage_n pag._n 453._o of_o dowry_n pag._n 454._o of_o divorsement_n pag._n 457._o whether_o matrimony_n be_v a_o sacrament_n pag._n 462._o chapter_n xi_o of_o whoordome_n fornication_n and_o adultery_n pag_n 468._o of_o bastard_n pag._n 475._o of_o idleness_n pag._n 479._o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n 482._o whether_o the_o man_n or_o woman_n do_v sin_n more_o greevouslie_o in_o adultery_n pag._n 489._o of_o reconciliation_n of_o man_n &_o wife_n 495._o of_o wine_n and_o droonkennesse_n pag._n 497._o of_o danse_v pag._n 503._o of_o garment_n and_o apparel_n pag._n 506._o of_o counterfeit_a and_o false_a colour_n 507._o chapter_n xii_o the_o eight_o precept_n of_o not_o commit_v theft_n pag._n 517._o of_o beneficence_n and_o hospitality_n 518._o of_o benefit_v and_o unthankfulnes_n 523._o of_o play_n and_o pastime_n pag._n 524._o *_o of_o gentleness_n and_o affability_n pag._n 528._o chapter_n xiii_o the_o nine_o precept_n of_o not_o bear_v false_a witness_n ibidem_fw-la of_o contumely_n ibidem_fw-la of_o suspicion_n pag._n 533._o of_o mock_v and_o taunt_a pag._n 534._o of_o deceit_n or_o guile_n ibidem_fw-la whether_o guile_n be_v lawful_a for_o the_o root_n out_o of_o idolatry_n and_o heresy_n 539._o of_o dissimulation_n pag._n 541._o of_o truth_n and_o of_o a_o lie_n pag._n 542._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o lie_v for_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o our_o neighbour_n pag._n 546._o whether_o we_o may_v lie_v for_o modesty_n sake_n pag._n 547._o whether_o faith_n against_o a_o promise_n breaker_n must_v be_v keep_v pag._n 548._o of_o a_o fable_n and_o apolog_n pag._n 550._o chapter_n xiiii_o the_o last_o precept_n against_o lust_a 551._o of_o the_o comparison_n between_o sin_n 553._o of_o charity_n which_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n pag._n 556._o of_o salutation_n pag._n 560._o whether_o the_o commandment_n of_o love_a god_n with_o all_o the_o hart_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v keep_v in_o this_o life_n pag._n 562._o whether_o the_o first_o motion_n shall_v be_v account_v sin_n pag._n 565._o whether_o by_o reward_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v move_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n 573._o chapter_n xv_o of_o the_o use_n and_o abrogate_a of_o the_o law_n pag._n ●75_n chapter_n xvi_o of_o the_o likeness_n and_o unlikeness_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a league_n or_o covenant_n pag._n 582._o a_o comparison_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o father_n with_o we_o pag._n 586._o chapter_n xvii_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o manifestation_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v he_o perform_v all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n pag._n 599._o chapter_n xviii_o a_o exposition_n upon_o the_o twelve_o article_n pag._n 612._o the_o method_n and_o order_n of_o the_o common_a place_n of_o the_o three_o part_n after_o these_o thing_n do_v follow_v the_o cause_n and_o the_o general_a mean_n whereby_o we_o be_v both_o put_v and_o retain_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o christ_n and_o salvation_n and_o there_o be_v also_o show_v the_o effect_n of_o christ_n remain_v in_o us._n all_o which_o thing_n the_o place_n follow_v do_v plain_o teach_v to_o wit_n the_o place_n of_o predestination_n and_o calling_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_n of_o adoption_n justification_n christian_a liberty_n of_o repentance_n of_o christian_a life_n of_o patience_n in_o affliction_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o good_a man_n and_o final_o of_o eternal_a life_n the_o chapter_n and_o common_a place_n of_o the_o three_o part_n chapter_n i_o of_o the_o eternal_a predestination_n of_o god_n wherein_o also_o be_v refell_v the_o argument_n which_o the_o adversary_n make_v against_o the_o same_o pag._n 1._o whether_o god_n will_v destroy_v any_o man_n pag._n 42._o chapter_n two_o of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n pag._n 44._o of_o grace_n pag._n 47._o how_o grace_n and_o work_n be_v unto_o eternal_a life_n pag._n 52._o chapter_n iii_o of_o faith_n and_o the_o certainty_n thereof_o and_o how_o faith_n may_v agree_v with_o fear_n pag._n 63._o of_o security_n pag._n 67._o whether_o true_a faith_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o charity_n pag._n 69._o how_o faith_n excel_v charity_n and_o the_o contrary_a pag._n 75._o what_o union_n the_o godly_a have_v with_o christ_n pag._n 77._o of_o the_o adoption_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n pag._n 79._o the_o description_n of_o christian_a hope_n 82._o chapter_n four_o that_o justification_n be_v of_o faith_n only_o not_o of_o work_n pag._n 89._o chapter_n five_o of_o peace_n bondage_n christian_a liberty_n of_o offence_n of_o conscience_n and_o of_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n pag._n 161._o chapter_n vi_o of_o vow_n in_o general_n pag._n 175._o of_o the_o vow_n of_o nazareth_n pag._n 177._o of_o the_o vow_n of_o jeptha_n pag._n 182._o of_o the_o rechabite_v pag._n 188._o of_o peregrination_n pag._n 191._o chapter_n vii_o of_o marriage_n and_o sole_a life_n especial_o of_o minister_n pag._n 192._o that_o chastity_n be_v no_o common_a gift_n of_o god_n pag._n 198._o chapter_n viii_o of_o repentance_n of_o contrition_n confession_n and_o satisfaction_n pag._n 203._o chapter_n ix_o of_o the_o work_n of_o supererogation_n &_o imagine_a perfection_n of_o the_o papist_n pag._n 227._o of_o purgatory_n and_o papistical_a indulgence_n pag._n 232._o chapter_n x_o of_o tear_n fast_v &_o there_o also_o of_o lent_n pag._n 245._o of_o watch_n pag._n 256._o chapter_n xi_o of_o a_o christian_a life_n and_o there_o of_o sundry_a vocation_n pag._n 257._o of_o friendship_n pag._n 258._o how_o we_o be_v to_o take_v counsel_n of_o god_n 260._o the_o example_n of_o naaman_n declare_v 263._o that_o the_o possession_n of_o riches_n be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n pag._n 267._o chapter_n xii_o of_o liberality_n and_o magnificence_n 269._o of_o fortitude_n mortification_n endure_v the_o cross_n and_o affliction_n pag._n 270._o of_o flight_n pag._n 287._o whether_o david_n do_v well_o in_o fly_v to_o the_o philistine_n for_o fear_n of_o saul_n pag._n 291._o whether_o the_o holy_a man_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o ethnik_n in_o abide_v adversity_n 296._o chapter_n xiii_o of_o holy_a prayer_n pag._n 300._o whether_o prayer_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n pag._n 310._o how_o god_n say_v he_o will_v give_v that_o which_o he_o will_v not_o give_v and_o contrariwise_o ibid._n of_o the_o abuse_n of_o foreign_a language_n 309._o of_o music_n and_o meet_a pag._n 311._o chapter_n xiiii_o of_o death_n and_o of_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a against_o the_o same_o pag._n 314._o of_o mourn_v for_o the_o dead_a pag._n 315._o of_o burial_n pag._n 319._o that_o soul_n loose_v from_o their_o body_n do_v not_o sleep_v pag._n 323._o of_o wander_a spirit_n pag._n 326._o chapter_n xv_o of_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 327._o chapter_n xvi_o of_o the_o take_n up_o of_o elias_n and_o enoch_n and_o of_o their_o return_n pag._n 370._o chapter_n xvii_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n pag._n 385._o of_o the_o last_o judgement_n pag._n 386._o that_o all_o man_n glory_n in_o heaven_n shall_v be_v alike_o pag._n 389._o of_o the_o change_n of_o all_o thing_n pag._n 393._o the_o method_n of_o the_o common_a
and_o earth_n shall_v go_v together_o and_o a_o undoubted_a shipwreck_n do_v follow_v augustine_n in_o his_o 18_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o nine_o chapter_n when_o he_o have_v rehearse_v that_o fable_n how_o there_o have_v be_v once_o a_o controversy_n between_o pallas_n and_o neptune_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v give_v name_n unto_o the_o city_n of_o athens_n and_o that_o when_o the_o man_n be_v on_o neptune_n side_n and_o the_o woman_n with_o their_o pallas_n and_o that_o the_o woman_n have_v overcome_v the_o man_n by_o one_o voice_n neptune_n be_v angry_a cause_v the_o wave_n to_o arise_v drown_v a_o part_n of_o athens_n territory_n drown_v and_o drown_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o territory_n of_o athens_n this_o i_o say_v when_o augustine_n have_v recite_v he_o add_v that_o the_o devil_n may_v do_v the_o same_o and_o that_o sometime_o he_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o flood_n and_o sometime_o repress_v they_o if_o i_o will_v reckon_v up_o all_o that_o might_n be_v speak_v hereof_o it_o shall_v be_v infinite_a let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o i_o have_v thus_o short_o touch_v the_o general_a thing_n themselves_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o use_v his_o help_n 30_o now_o must_v we_o consider_v of_o that_o which_o we_o set_v down_o in_o the_o three_o place_n namely_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o ask_v counsel_n of_o ill_a spirit_n or_o to_o use_v their_o help_n first_o indeed_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v lawful_a for_o god_n use_v the_o labour_n of_o devil_n why_o then_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o and_o paul_n deliver_v man_n unto_o sathan_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 5_o 5._o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o also_o to_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o spirit_n here_o we_o must_v make_v a_o distinction_n for_o we_o use_v spirit_n either_o by_o authority_n &_o commandment_n as_o when_o we_o command_v they_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o else_o by_o acquaintance_n fellowship_n covenant_n obedience_n or_o prayer_n god_n bear_v rule_v over_o the_o devil_n 18._o matt._n 17_o 18._o acts._n 16_o 18._o and_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n command_v that_o they_o shall_v go_v out_o of_o the_o body_n possess_v devil_n why_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o use_v the_o help_n of_o devil_n but_o to_o require_v or_o expect_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o upon_o any_o covenant_n or_o bargain_n that_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o it_o be_v idolatry_n and_o the_o devil_n seek_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o lead_v we_o from_o god_n to_o the_o worship_v of_o he_o hereunto_o also_o tend_v custom_n ceremony_n and_o sacrifice_n by_o this_o mean_n man_n fall_v from_o god_n unto_o the_o devil_n further_o they_o which_o do_v these_o thing_n do_v sin_n against_o themselves_o for_o we_o never_o read_v that_o the_o end_n of_o these_o art_n be_v good_a whereof_o wretched_a saul_n may_v be_v a_o example_n and_o instruction_n unto_o us._n 19_o sam._n 28_o 19_o the_o devil_n indeed_o feign_v himself_o to_o be_v compel_v and_o to_o be_v bind_v by_o little_a stone_n or_o ring_n howbeit_o the_o same_o compulsion_n be_v only_o a_o voluntary_a and_o deceitful_a compulsion_n he_o feign_v as_o though_o he_o will_v cast_v out_o another_o spirit_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o for_o the_o ill_a spirit_n do_v but_o dally_v one_o with_o another_o to_o deceive_v man_n none_o of_o we_o will_v commit_v our_o do_n to_o a_o man_n who_o we_o know_v to_o be_v full_a of_o fraud_n and_o treachery_n now_o the_o devil_n be_v not_o only_o a_o liar_n but_o even_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n church_n exorcism_n in_o the_o church_n truth_n indeed_o it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a exorcism_n or_o adjuration_n in_o the_o church_n whereof_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n augustine_n and_o eusebius_n make_v mention_n 7._o look_v part_n 4_o chap._n 9_o art_n 7._o but_o these_o be_v special_a gift_n for_o that_o age_n &_o dure_v but_o for_o a_o time_n now_o they_o be_v take_v away_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v the_o hebrews_n have_v conjurer_n &_o solomon_n write_v exorcism_n exorcism_n s_z exorcism_n i_o know_v that_o josephus_n in_o his_o eight_o book_n of_o antiquity_n write_v that_o solomon_n do_v so_o to_o drive_v away_o ill_a spirit_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o health_n of_o man_n he_o describe_v also_o the_o mean_n whereby_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v namely_o that_o under_o the_o broad_a part_n of_o a_o ring_n there_o be_v a_o little_a root_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o nostril_n of_o a_o man_n possess_v the_o ill_a spirit_n be_v forthwith_o expel_v but_o herewith_o he_o write_v that_o solomon_n use_v also_o certain_a prayer_n and_o holy_a name_n and_o that_o one_o eleazar_n be_v a_o man_n skilful_a in_o these_o thing_n make_v demonstration_n of_o his_o cunning_n before_o vespasian_n and_o his_o son_n titus_n and_o domitian_n and_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o vespasian_n wrought_v so_o that_o a_o spirit_n at_o his_o come_n forth_o of_o a_o man_n overthrow_v a_o basin_n full_a of_o water_n which_o be_v there_o set_v for_o the_o purpose_n and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o see_v all_o these_o thing_n in_o very_a deed_n i_o dare_v not_o deny_v the_o history_n but_o yet_o i_o think_v good_a to_o answer_v one_o of_o these_o two_o way_n either_o that_o god_n will_v for_o a_o time_n bestow_v such_o a_o benefit_n upon_o the_o israelite_n which_o notwithstanding_o we_o have_v not_o read_v or_o else_o that_o solomon_n do_v these_o thing_n when_o he_o be_v now_o depart_v from_o the_o true_a god_n and_o have_v begin_v to_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o such_o exorcist_n indeed_o be_v until_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o appear_v by_o that_o history_n of_o the_o child_n of_o s●eva_n 13._o acts._n 19_o 13._o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o acts._n howbeit_o exorcism_n must_v not_o be_v use_v but_o only_o by_o they_o which_o be_v sure_a that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o that_o grace_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v certain_a which_o have_v the_o name_n without_o the_o grace_n these_o do_v use_v invocation_n by_o name_n merit_n and_o relik_n of_o saint_n for_o this_o do_v the_o devil_n seek_v even_o to_o entangle_v the_o people_n with_o superstition_n thing_n the_o devil_n seem_v to_o be_v delight_v with_o outward_a thing_n indeed_o the_o devil_n seem_v as_o though_o they_o be_v delit_v with_o outward_a thing_n as_o herb_n little_a stone_n and_o perfume_n but_o they_o be_v not_o so_o delight_v withal_o as_o live_v creature_n be_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o meat_n but_o as_o it_o be_v with_o certain_a seal_n &_o sacrament_n wherefore_o they_o come_v quick_o when_o they_o be_v call_v lest_o they_o shall_v not_o seem_v to_o stand_v to_o their_o covenant_n they_o will_v altogether_o imitate_v god_n for_o little_a stone_n &_o root_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o to_o allure_v devil_n wherefore_o even_o as_o god_n forgive_v not_o sin_n unto_o we_o by_o any_o power_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o for_o his_o covenant_n and_o promise_n sake_n so_o the_o devil_n will_v seem_v to_o deal_v with_o those_o that_o be_v he_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v present_a with_o they_o not_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v by_o they_o but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o promise_n and_o covenant_n man_n he_o mock_v simple_a man_n and_o very_o pitiful_o do_v he_o mock_v simple_a and_o foolish_a man_n for_o they_o which_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v spirit_n which_o do_v love_v they_o when_o they_o be_v afterward_o call_v into_o judgement_n and_o condemn_v unto_o death_n can_v by_v they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o extremity_n of_o execution_n sometime_o indeed_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o obey_v they_o that_o be_v their_o own_o but_o that_o be_v in_o foul_a and_o dishonest_a thing_n namely_o in_o adultery_n theft_n &_o murder_n they_o never_o stir_v they_o up_o unto_o good_a for_o they_o be_v satan_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o adversary_n of_o god_n they_o will_v have_v covenant_n and_o promise_n to_o be_v make_v which_o can_v otherwise_o be_v than_o against_o god_n 31_o but_o the_o schoolman_n stand_v in_o doubt_n mischief_n whether_o we_o may_v use_v enchantment_n to_o take_v away_o mischief_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v enchantment_n to_o take_v away_o mischief_n and_o in_o general_a they_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a but_o yet_o they_o say_v that_o if_o we_o can_v perceive_v that_o those_o covenant_n consist_v in_o feather_n or_o root_n or_o little_a stone_n and_o we_o can_v find_v those_o thing_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o take_v they_o away_o &_o break_v they_o for_o otherwise_o they_o say_v that_o one_o enchantment_n must_v not_o be_v take_v away_o with_o
and_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o genesis_n 50._o levi._n 17_o 14._o deu._n 12_o 23._o 1._o cor._n 15_o verse_n 50._o leviticus_fw-la and_o deuteron_n they_o taunt_v with_o these_o argument_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 15._o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n therefore_o blood_n be_v not_o the_o soul_n otherwise_o paul_n have_v exclude_v soul_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n further_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v 28._o matt._n 10_o 28._o fear_v not_o those_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o have_v not_o to_o do_v with_o the_o soul_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n then_o without_o controversy_n the_o tyrant_n have_v to_o do_v with_o it_o they_o shed_v it_o they_o destroy_v it_o &c_n &c_n while_o they_o kill_v the_o holy_a martyr_n of_o god_n these_o argument_n be_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n dissolve_v by_o augustine_n against_o adimantus_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o speak_n be_v of_o the_o life_n of_o brute_n beast_n but_o the_o argument_n which_o these_o man_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n conclude_v as_o touch_v a_o reasonable_a and_o humane_a soul_n wherefore_o their_o own_o argument_n have_v reproove_v they_o unwares_o but_o the_o more_o thorough_o to_o confute_v their_o first_o argument_n note_n that_o when_o paul_n in_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o come_v he_o by_o flesh_n and_o blood_n mean_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o mortal_a body_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n which_o thing_n the_o word_n allege_v there_o by_o he_o do_v declare_v it_o be_v sow_v in_o corruption_n and_o mortality_n but_o it_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o contrary_a condition_n but_o thou_o imagine_v that_o aswell_o the_o life_n of_o brute_n beast_n as_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v call_v blood_n that_o must_v be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n to_o be_v interpret_v by_o the_o figure_n metonymy_fw-la as_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n put_v for_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o augustine_n testify_v against_o adimantus_n the_o lord_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v 26._o matt._n 26_o 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n see_v therefore_o the_o blood_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o it_o may_v be_v call_v the_o soul_n itself_o again_o as_o by_o the_o same_o figure_n the_o thing_n contain_v be_v take_v for_o the_o thing_n contain_v for_o who_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n contain_v in_o the_o blood_n which_o be_v spill_v and_o consume_v it_o can_v abide_v any_o long_o in_o the_o body_n yea_o and_o it_o be_v so_o join_v to_o the_o same_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o affection_n and_o perturbation_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o this_o life_n yea_o &_o some_o have_v think_v that_o it_o be_v therefore_o decree_v that_o man_n shall_v refrain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n lest_o they_o shall_v become_v of_o beastly_a manner_n which_o they_o say_v be_v easy_o carry_v into_o our_o mind_n if_o we_o shall_v eat_v the_o blood_n of_o wild_a beast_n which_o thing_n i_o have_v allege_v not_o as_o though_o i_o allow_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o god_n give_v that_o commandment_n but_o to_o declare_v the_o conjunction_n even_o of_o man_n soul_n with_o the_o body_n 26_o but_o how_o man_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n it_o be_v declare_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o genesis_n 26._o in_o 1._o cor._n 11_o 7._o gene._n 1_o 26._o where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n after_o our_o image_n and_o likeness_n that_o he_o may_v have_v dominion_n over_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n creature_n the_o image_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o the_o rule_n over_o creature_n the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n where_o it_o appear_v that_o herein_o stand_v the_o image_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v ruler_n over_o all_o creature_n even_o as_o god_n be_v the_o ruler_n over_o all_o thing_n augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n do_v oftentimes_o refer_v this_o to_o the_o memory_n mind_n and_o will_n which_o be_v faculty_n of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o soul_n do_v represent_v as_o he_o say_v the_o three_o person_n in_o one_o substance_n howbeit_o this_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n do_v rather_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o image_n for_o man_n be_v not_o set_v above_o other_o creature_n to_o have_v dominion_n over_o they_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o reason_n which_o plain_o show_v itself_o by_o these_o three_o faculty_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o that_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v bind_v unto_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o govern_v and_o rule_v well_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n with_o memory_n mind_n and_o will_v except_o we_o both_o understand_v remember_v and_o will_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v unto_o god_n for_o if_o our_o mind_n remain_v infect_v as_o it_o be_v with_o sin_n it_o will_v not_o lawful_o have_v dominion_n of_o thing_n but_o will_v rather_o exercise_v tyranny_n against_o they_o man_n the_o true_a image_n of_o god_n be_v the_o new_a man_n wherefore_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v the_o new_a man_n which_o understand_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o be_v desirous_a of_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o as_o paul_n have_v teach_v we_o when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o colossian_n 10_o col._n 3_o 10_o put_v upon_o you_o the_o new_a man_n which_o be_v shape_v again_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o he_o which_o create_v he_o where_o we_o see_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v true_a &_o effectual_a to_o lead_v unto_o the_o image_n of_o perfection_n and_o this_o be_v more_o express_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 24._o ephes_n 4_o 24._o put_v you_o on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o be_v create_v according_a to_o god_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n when_o our_o mind_n be_v both_o endue_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o adorn_v with_o righteousness_n then_o do_v it_o true_o express_v god_n for_o righteousness_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o certain_a flow_v in_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n into_o our_o mind_n but_o perhaps_o thou_o will_v urge_v that_o after_o this_o manner_n a_o woman_n also_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n we_o say_v that_o if_o thou_o compare_v she_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o creature_n she_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n for_o she_o have_v dominion_n over_o they_o and_o have_v the_o use_n of_o they_o but_o in_o this_o place_n thou_o must_v compare_v she_o unto_o man_n and_o then_o be_v she_o not_o say_v to_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n because_o she_o do_v not_o bear_v rule_n over_o the_o man_n but_o rather_o obei_v he_o wherefore_o augustine_n in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la say_fw-la if_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o mind_n and_o reason_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v according_a unto_o the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o the_o woman_n be_v compare_v unto_o man_n as_o touch_v the_o action_n and_o affair_n of_o this_o life_n she_o be_v not_o the_o image_n of_o god_n because_o she_o be_v create_v to_o be_v a_o helper_n of_o man_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o have_v another_o exposition_n exposition_n augustine_n allegorical_a exposition_n but_o the_o same_o allegorical_a he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v call_v man_n see_v we_o contemplate_v god_n and_o that_o we_o be_v of_o good_a right_n bear_v head_v because_o we_o must_v there_o repose_v ourselves_o with_o incessant_a endeavour_n for_o unsearchable_a be_v the_o end_n of_o divine_a thing_n but_o we_o be_v call_v woman_n say_v he_o when_o we_o descend_v with_o our_o cogitation_n unto_o the_o care_n of_o earthly_a thing_n there_o it_o be_v meet_v to_o have_v the_o head_n cover_v because_o a_o measure_n must_v be_v use_v and_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v not_o too_o much_o plunge_v in_o worldly_a thing_n howbeit_o we_o must_v not_o lean_v unto_o allegorical_a interpretation_n the_o exposition_n which_o we_o allege_v before_o be_v plain_a ¶_o of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n look_v more_o in_o the_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o first_o &_o second_o chapter_n of_o gen._n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n 26._o in_o gen._n 1._o verse_n 26._o 27_o the_o image_n of_o any_o man_n be_v the_o form_n whereby_o it_o represent_v he_o a_o similitude_n
seduce_v she_o aught_o to_o give_v she_o a_o dowry_n and_o to_o take_v she_o to_o wife_n but_o it_o be_v add_v if_o the_o father_n will_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v only_o give_v a_o dowry_n neither_o shall_v he_o have_v the_o maiden_n to_o wife_n against_o the_o father_n will_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n the_o thirty_o chapter_n 4._o verse_n 4._o if_o a_o maiden_n vow_v a_o vow_n and_o the_o father_n hear_v it_o and_o let_v it_o not_o the_o vow_n shall_v be_v firm_a but_o if_o he_o gainsay_v it_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o what_o be_v a_o vow_n a_o promise_n make_v unto_o god_n howbeit_o matrimony_n be_v a_o promise_n which_o be_v make_v unto_o man_n if_o god_n permit_v a_o vow_n make_v unto_o he_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n much_o more_o will_v he_o permit_v matrimony_n unto_o he_o see_v it_o be_v a_o promise_n make_v between_o man_n 13._o 2._o sa._n 13_o 13._o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o samuel_n thamar_n answer_v unto_o her_o brother_n ammon_n if_o thou_o desire_v i_o at_o my_o father_n hand_n he_o will_v not_o deny_v i_o unto_o thou_o the_o custom_n be_v then_o that_o the_o daughter_n be_v desire_v of_o the_o parent_n here_o i_o dispute_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o david_n to_o give_v to_o ammon_n his_o sister_n to_o wife_n 1._o ephe._n 6_o 1._o further_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n child_n obey_v your_o parent_n in_o all_o thing_n he_o except_v nothing_o when_o he_o write_v so_o but_o say_v in_o all_o thing_n namely_o which_o they_o command_v not_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n 36._o verse_n 36._o be_v most_o manifest_o declare_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o parent_n to_o give_v their_o daughter_n in_o marriage_n to_o husband_n and_o that_o be_v know_v not_o only_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o also_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o even_o the_o comedy_n of_o terence_n and_o plautus_n manifest_o declare_v euripides_n euripides_n and_o in_o euripides_n a_o maiden_n answer_v of_o my_o marriage_n my_o father_n will_v have_v care_n see_v these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o i_o to_o determine_v which_o verse_n certeinlie_o so_o like_v ambrose_n ambrose_n ambrose_n as_o he_o place_v it_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o patriarch_n further_o it_o serve_v very_o well_o for_o domestical_a peace_n for_o the_o daughter_n in_o law_n ought_v to_o be_v to_o the_o father_n in_o law_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o daughter_n contrariwise_o of_o rash_a marriage_n rise_v great_a discord_n at_o home_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o father_n ought_v to_o help_v his_o son_n with_o his_o good_n it_o be_v meet_v again_o that_o the_o son_n shall_v obey_v his_o father_n in_o contract_v of_o matrimony_n in_o other_o civil_a contract_n the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o father_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr mutuo_fw-la ad_fw-la senatusconsultum_fw-la macedonianum_fw-la wherefore_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v be_v tarry_v for_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n point_n the_o civil_a law_n touch_v this_o point_n the_o self-same_a thing_n have_v the_o civil_a law_n decree_v justinian_n in_o his_o institution_n in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr nuptijs_fw-la will_v not_o that_o marriage_n shall_v be_v firm_a without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o parent_n and_o in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr statu_fw-la hominum_fw-la in_o the_o law_n paulus_n if_o a_o son_n marry_v a_o wife_n against_o the_o will_n of_o his_o parent_n the_o child_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o those_o parent_n shall_v not_o be_v legitimate_a and_o in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr nuptijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi proponis_fw-la the_o case_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v mark_v the_o daughter_n marry_v by_o consent_n of_o her_o father_n she_o afterward_o be_v agréeve_v at_o her_o husband_n depart_v from_o he_o after_o that_o he_o return_v into_o favour_n and_o she_o marry_v he_o again_o against_o her_o father_n will_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o that_o matrimony_n be_v not_o lawful_a hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o much_o those_o law_n esteem_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o father_n again_o in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi furiosi_fw-la child_n if_o perhaps_o their_o parent_n be_v mad_a or_o béere_a of_o their_o wit_n see_v they_o can_v use_v the_o consent_n of_o they_o in_o contract_v of_o matrimony_n they_o shall_v use_v the_o consent_n of_o their_o tutor_n 18_o so_o then_o it_o seem_v marvelous_a that_o christian_n at_o this_o day_n determine_v that_o marriage_n be_v lawful_a without_o consent_n of_o the_o parent_n hereof_o what_o the_o canon_n determine_v hereof_o and_o to_o cover_v this_o they_o allege_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o which_o i_o think_v it_o good_a bréefelie_o to_o declare_v some_o and_o first_o i_o will_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o better_a canon_n which_o be_v the_o more_o ancient_a for_o the_o late_a they_o be_v decree_v the_o more_o corrupt_a they_o be_v in_o the_o decree_n cause_n 30._o question_n 5._o chapter_n aliter_fw-la matrimony_n be_v then_o lawful_a when_o the_o maiden_n be_v desire_v at_o the_o parent_n hand_n and_o deliver_v open_o otherwise_o they_o be_v not_o matrimony_n but_o whoredom_n dishonest_a companing_n adultery_n and_o fornication_n thus_o decree_v euaristus_n nicolaus_n also_o at_o the_o consultation_n of_o the_o bulgar_o nicolaus_n euaristus_n nicolaus_n cause_n 30._o question_n 5._o chapter_n nostrate_v those_o matrimony_n be_v firm_a which_o be_v knit_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o they_o which_o contract_v they_o and_o of_o those_o in_o who_o power_n they_o be_v leo._n leo._n leo_n also_o the_o first_o in_o the_o 30._o cause_n question_v 5._o chapter_n qualis_fw-la then_o it_o be_v to_o be_v count_v matrimony_n when_o the_o maiden_n be_v by_o her_o parent_n deliver_v unto_o her_o husband_n and_o in_o the_o 31._o cause_n question_v 2._o chapter_n non_fw-la omnis_fw-la a_o woman_n which_o marry_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o her_o father_n be_v without_o blame_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v afterward_o find_v fault_n withal_o and_o thus_o gratianus_n conclude_v that_o place_n gratian._n gratian._n that_o he_o say_v in_o contract_v of_o matrimony_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o parent_n be_v always_o to_o be_v require_v further_o ambrose_n ambrose_n ambrose_n entreat_v of_o the_o place_n in_o genesis_n where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o servant_n of_o abraham_n come_v into_o mesopotamia_n 47._o gen._n 24_o 47._o and_o find_v a_o wife_n for_o his_o master_n son_n the_o parent_n of_o the_o maid_n when_o they_o endeavour_v to_o retain_v he_o long_o and_o he_o will_v not_o tarry_v they_o call_v the_o maid_n and_o ask_v she_o whether_o she_o will_v go_v with_o he_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o say_v as_o also_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o 23._o cause_n question_v 2._o chapter_n honorandum_fw-la they_o ask_v not_o she_o of_o the_o wedding_n but_o only_o of_o the_o iornieng_n with_o he_o for_o it_o pertain_v not_o say_v he_o to_o maidenlie_o shamefastness_n to_o choose_v unto_o herself_o a_o husband_n and_o the_o same_o he_o affirm_v of_o widow_n which_o be_v young_a although_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n i_o can_v herein_o agree_v unto_o ambrose_n that_o the_o maiden_n be_v not_o demand_v the_o question_n whether_o she_o will_v marry_v he_o neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o she_o be_v demand_v as_o touch_v both_o matter_n for_o in_o the_o 30_o cause_n question_v 2._o chapter_n vbi_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la we_o read_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o matrimony_n where_o be_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o those_o which_o contract_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o child_n which_o be_v but_o seven_o year_n of_o age_n and_o see_v at_o that_o age_n they_o be_v think_v to_o understand_v somewhat_o of_o matrimony_n necessary_a be_v the_o consent_n of_o they_o which_o contract_n and_o because_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o spousage_n we_o think_v good_a to_o note_v this_o by_o the_o way_n that_o child_n so_o contract_v aught_o to_o be_v seven_o year_n of_o age_n for_o otherwise_o the_o parent_n can_v promise_v nothing_o for_o they_o those_o child_n if_o they_o afterward_o be_v of_o more_o year_n shall_v contract_v another_o matrimony_n the_o same_o be_v of_o effect_n and_o not_o the_o former_a espousal_n which_o yet_o must_v be_v understand_v if_o the_o parent_n consent_v to_o the_o second_o matrimony_n moreover_o in_o the_o 31._o cause_n question_v the_o second_o chapter_n tua_fw-la hormisdas_n answer_v that_o child_n when_o they_o contract_v after_o this_o manner_n aught_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o will_n of_o their_o parent_n and_o in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr sponsatione_fw-la impuberum_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n tua_fw-la it_o be_v ordain_v that_o child_n when_o they_o come_v to_o ripe_a age_n
man_n in_o deed_n may_v give_v certain_a gift_n unto_o their_o wife_n 〈◊〉_d jointure_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o marriage_n which_o be_v call_v jointure_n as_o some_o certeiye_v recompensing_n of_o the_o dowry_n yet_o nevertheless_o when_o they_o be_v once_o marry_v together_o the_o roman_a law_n permit_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v give_v gift_n one_o to_o a_o other_o plutarch_n plutarch_n whereof_o plutarch_n also_o have_v make_v mention_n out_o of_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v bring_v a_o other_o reason_n than_o that_o which_o i_o declare_v to_o be_v take_v of_o the_o very_a law_n these_o be_v the_o word_n in_o the_o 35._o and_o 36._o precept_n of_o matrimony_n certain_a body_n be_v say_v to_o consist_v of_o sever_a thing_n as_o a_o army_n and_o a_o navy_n other_o body_n of_o thing_n join_v together_o as_o a_o house_n and_o a_o ship_n and_o other_o some_o be_v unite_v and_o compact_v together_o as_o all_o live_a creature_n be_v wherefore_o matrimony_n which_o consist_v of_o live_a creature_n be_v unite_v and_o compact_v but_o the_o matrimony_n which_o be_v make_v either_o for_o dowry_n sake_n or_o for_o child_n belong_v to_o body_n join_v together_o and_o that_o which_o consist_v for_o pleasure_n or_o carnal_a copulation_n thou_o may_v number_v among_o the_o sever_a body_n for_o there_o man_n and_o wife_n may_v be_v say_v to_o dwell_v together_o but_o not_o to_o live_v together_o and_o as_o in_o live_a creature_n the_o temperature_n of_o humour_n run_v through_o all_o part_n so_o marriage_n must_v mingle_v body_n money_n friend_n and_o kinsfolk_n together_o and_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o roman_a law_n forbid_v person_n couple_v in_o matrimony_n to_o take_v or_o to_o give_v gift_n one_o to_o a_o other_o not_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o any_o one_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v think_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v common_a howbeit_o these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o free_a gift_n and_o not_o of_o dowry_n treasury_n dowry_n of_o maid_n give_v out_o of_o the_o common_a treasury_n which_o otherwise_o be_v both_o lawful_a and_o much_o use_v in_o the_o roman_a public_a we_o will_v for_o the_o daughter_n of_o scipio_n curius_n and_o cincinnatus_n have_v dowry_n out_o of_o the_o treasury_n because_o of_o the_o poverty_n of_o their_o parent_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v marry_v without_o dowry_n decree_n the_o council_n of_o arl_n make_v a_o false_a decree_n yea_o and_o the_o general_a council_n of_o arl_n as_o it_o be_v rehearse_v in_o the_o thirty_o question_n the_o five_o chapter_n nullum_fw-la sine_fw-la decree_v that_o no_o matrimony_n shall_v be_v contract_v without_o a_o dowry_n let_v the_o dowry_n say_v it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o ability_n neither_o let_v any_o woman_n presume_v to_o take_v a_o husband_n or_o any_o husband_n a_o wife_n without_o public_a marriage_n this_o canon_n i_o willing_o allow_v in_o that_o it_o condemn_v secret_a marriage_n but_o where_o it_o decré_v that_o marriage_n can_v be_v contract_v without_o a_o dowry_n see_v that_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n word_n i_o can_v admit_v for_o there_o be_v and_o have_v be_v very_o many_o which_o have_v marry_v wife_n altogether_o without_o dowry_n yea_o and_o these_o man_n of_o so_o great_a honesty_n and_o authority_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v a_o rash_a part_n to_o condemn_v their_o do_n see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o against_o it_o neither_o do_v i_o judge_v that_o matrimony_n shall_v by_o any_o mean_n be_v deny_v to_o those_o woman_n which_o be_v without_o a_o dowry_n if_o marriage_n be_v necessary_a for_o they_o moreover_o paul_n testify_v 23._o ephes_n 5_o 23._o that_o matrimony_n do_v shadow_v the_o conjunction_n that_o christ_n have_v with_o his_o church_n wherefore_o if_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v well_o consider_v the_o church_n have_v nothing_o to_o offer_v unto_o christ_n in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o dowry_n nay_o rather_o as_o ezechiel_n teach_v the_o same_o be_v find_v wrap_v in_o blood_n and_o mire_n 30_o ezec._n 16_o 30_o also_o the_o father_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n seem_v sometime_o to_o have_v have_v wife_n without_o dowry_n so_o than_o it_o seem_v meet_v to_o be_v decree_v that_o man_n may_v and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o receive_v dowry_n when_o they_o be_v give_v and_o that_o the_o same_o custom_n be_v honest_a so_o that_o a_o just_a measure_n be_v not_o exceed_v and_o that_o he_o which_o marry_v be_v not_o allure_v thereunto_o through_o the_o name_n of_o the_o dowry_n as_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n the_o manner_n and_o godliness_n of_o the_o wife_n ought_v chéeflie_o to_o be_v regard_v neither_o ought_v any_o man_n forthwith_o to_o persuade_v himself_o if_o i_o shall_v marry_v a_o wife_n without_o a_o dowry_n i_o shall_v therefore_o have_v she_o the_o better_a and_o the_o more_o at_o quiet_a jerom._n jerom._n since_o as_o jerom_n declare_v in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o jovinian_a cato_n censorius_n have_v actoria_n paula_n to_o wife_n cato_n the_o wife_n of_o cato_n bear_v of_o a_o base_a kindred_n who_o be_v poor_a also_o and_o without_o a_o dowry_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o she_o be_v a_o droonkard_n impotent_a and_o behave_v herself_o proud_o towards_o cato_n of_o divorsement_n and_o put_v away_o of_o wife_n 10._o in_o 1._o cor._n 7_o verse_n 10._o 52_o unto_o the_o hebrews_n and_o ethniks_n it_o be_v but_o a_o light_a matter_n to_o put_v away_o their_o wife_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a upon_o every_o occasion_n but_o unto_o the_o christian_n it_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v this_o have_v christ_n declare_v in_o the_o 5._o and_o 19_o of_o matthew_n 7._o matth._n 5_o 31_o and_o 19_o 7._o there_o when_o he_o say_v moses_n give_v you_o a_o bill_n of_o divorsement_n it_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o moses_n do_v this_o of_o himself_o without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v most_o faithful_a 2._o heb._n 3_o 2._o as_o god_n bear_v record_n of_o he_o and_o that_o which_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o law_n 1._o deut._n 24_o 1._o touch_v divorsement_n afterward_o be_v command_v in_o malachi_n to_o wit_n 16._o mal._n 2_o 16._o if_o thou_o hate_v thy_o wife_n put_v she_o awale_v for_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o that_o hatred_n and_o enmity_n shall_v be_v retain_v in_o so_o near_a friendship_n wherefore_o institution_n christ_n call_v we_o hom_n unto_o the_o first_o institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n christ_n call_v we_o home_o unto_o the_o first_o institution_n for_o insomuch_o as_o now_o the_o spirit_n be_v more_o plentiful_a and_o grace_n more_o abundant_a man_n ought_v to_o use_v great_a patience_n and_o charity_n towards_o their_o wife_n and_o not_o so_o to_o deal_v against_o they_o as_o they_o shall_v reject_v they_o for_o every_o cause_n in_o like_a manner_n there_o be_v require_v of_o the_o wife_n a_o great_a obedience_n and_o modesty_n 53_o here_o thou_o will_v say_v unto_o i_o what_o if_o thou_o shall_v find_v at_o this_o day_n among_o christian_n such_o as_o be_v so_o hard-hearted_a and_o so_o obstinate_a in_o retain_v of_o hatred_n and_o enmity_n in_o wedlock_n as_o they_o be_v not_o only_o equal_a to_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o go_v beyond_o they_o therein_o see_v then_o the_o disease_n be_v all_o one_o why_o be_v not_o the_o same_o remedy_n leave_v unto_o who_o we_o answer_v that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o such_o sort_n be_v stranger_n from_o christ_n wherefore_o we_o commit_v they_o to_o the_o commonweal_n to_o determine_v of_o they_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v most_o expedient_a for_o when_o they_o can_v be_v amend_v by_o the_o church_n let_v we_o count_v they_o for_o ethnik_n and_o publican_n let_v we_o deal_v with_o they_o by_o the_o civil_a law_n 7._o why_o paul_n intermit_v the_o exception_n of_o adultery_n 1._o cor._n 7._o we_o have_v it_o plain_o enough_o declare_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o a_o divorce_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v do_v unless_o it_o be_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o adultery_n the_o which_o exception_n if_o it_o be_v intermit_v by_o paul_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n for_o when_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o these_o thing_n but_o the_o lord_n he_o send_v we_o to_o the_o lord_n own_o word_n neither_o do_v he_o pluck_v any_o thing_n away_o from_o his_o commandment_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o command_v not_o but_o the_o lord_n he_o make_v not_o those_o thing_n of_o small_a force_n which_o he_o teach_v before_o when_o they_o be_v not_o read_v to_o be_v expresselie_n speak_v of_o christ_n since_o even_o those_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o say_v and_o i_o think_v that_o i_o also_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 40_o 1._o cor._n 7_o
wicked_a desire_n of_o fornication_n so_o that_o both_o of_o they_o as_o well_o touch_v the_o mind_n as_o the_o body_n be_v defile_v but_o here_o in_o marriage_n of_o contrary_a religion_n they_o be_v not_o couple_v together_o in_o respect_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o body_n only_o and_o paul_n testify_v that_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o infidel_n uncleanness_n be_v take_v away_o that_o the_o other_o party_n may_v not_o be_v contaminate_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n faith_n remain_v sound_a and_o the_o mind_n pure_a in_o the_o party_n sanctify_v which_o faith_n have_v no_o place_n in_o commit_v of_o whoredom_n the_o last_o doubt_n be_v if_o a_o christian_a husband_n dwell_v with_o a_o idolatrous_a and_o a_o unbeléeving_a wife_n and_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o rash_o to_o depart_v and_o yet_o may_v depart_v from_o a_o adulteress_n it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o more_o gréevous_a sin_n and_o more_o intolerable_a than_o idolatry_n be_v chrysostome_n answer_v chrysost_n chrysost_n that_o god_n be_v so_o very_o good_a as_o sometime_o he_o prefer_v our_o commodity_n before_o his_o own_o for_o he_o will_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v leave_v at_o the_o altar_n 32_o matth._n 5_o 32_o and_o before_o we_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n a_o reconciliation_n be_v to_o be_v make_v with_o our_o neighbour_n he_o sometime_o forbear_v to_o have_v a_o debt_n pay_v unto_o he_o and_o forgive_v the_o same_o but_o we_o he_o will_v not_o absolve_v unless_o we_o satisfy_v our_o neighbour_n wherefore_o the_o argument_n be_v but_o feeble_a wherein_o thou_o do_v gather_v that_o idolatry_n be_v a_o lesser_a sin_n than_o adultery_n because_o the_o spouse_n be_v permit_v to_o tarry_v with_o the_o idolatrous_a wife_n and_o from_o adultery_n he_o may_v depart_v but_o it_o appear_v that_o we_o may_v make_v a_o more_o perfect_a answer_n adultery_n idolatry_n a_o great_a sin_n than_o adultery_n that_o in_o very_a deed_n idolatry_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v a_o more_o gréevous_a sin_n than_o adultery_n but_o that_o adultery_n be_v more_o repugnant_a to_o wedlock_n than_o idolatry_n idolatry_n adultery_n more_o against_o wedlock_n than_o idolatry_n wherein_o man_n and_o wife_n shall_v be_v one_o flesh_n and_o by_o adultery_n be_v draw_v one_o from_o a_o other_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o idolatry_n be_v more_o repugnant_a unto_o god_n than_o adultery_n be_v but_o adultery_n be_v a_o great_a enemy_n to_o marriage_n than_o idolatry_n which_o do_v hereby_o appear_v for_o that_o marriage_n be_v have_v between_o idolater_n and_o mahumets_n 72_o but_o whether_o david_n do_v well_o in_o take_v of_o the_o synamite_n to_o wife_n beginning_n in_o 7._o kin._n 1._o at_o the_o beginning_n it_o appear_v doubtful_a unto_o some_o for_o those_o that_o be_v cold_a of_o nature_n when_o they_o marry_v wife_n they_o seem_v not_o to_o do_v the_o part_n of_o a_o marry_a man_n because_o according_a to_o humane_a law_n such_o marriage_n be_v not_o firm_a for_o cold_a person_n do_v enforce_v themselves_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o able_a man_n whether_o matrimony_n be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o for_o the_o impotency_n of_o the_o man_n certeinlie_o there_o have_v be_v many_o thing_n decree_v touch_v this_o matter_n as_o well_o by_o the_o civil_a as_o by_o the_o canon_n law_n first_o they_o decree_v that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o continual_a defect_n those_o which_o be_v contract_v aught_o to_o be_v separate_v so_o that_o the_o party_n which_o sue_v for_o separation_n have_v no_o foreknowledge_n of_o that_o disease_n for_o if_o the_o woman_n contract_v with_o a_o man_n in_o ill_a state_n do_v know_v thereof_o before_o she_o can_v for_o that_o cause_n step_v back_o from_o her_o husband_n there_o be_v a_o law_n have_v concern_v spousage_n in_o the_o law_n mulier_fw-la which_o ordain_v in_o this_o wise_a if_o before_o matrimony_n contract_v the_o wife_n know_v of_o the_o infamy_n or_o the_o impotency_n of_o the_o man_n let_v she_o impute_v it_o to_o her_o own_o self_n she_o can_v seek_v for_o divorce_n in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi uxor_fw-la about_o the_o end_n it_o be_v say_v if_o any_o man_n know_v that_o a_o woman_n have_v commit_v adultery_n and_o shall_v afterward_o marry_v she_o he_o can_v accuse_v she_o of_o adultery_n for_o see_v he_o take_v she_o to_o wife_n and_o have_v knowledge_n of_o it_o he_o seem_v to_o allow_v of_o her_o condition_n the_o same_o have_v the_o canon_n law_n determine_v as_o in_o the_o 33._o cause_n question_v 1._o in_o the_o chapter_n requisisti_n the_o gloss_n say_v if_o the_o woman_n know_v the_o impediment_n of_o the_o man_n and_o contract_n with_o he_o she_o can_v step_v back_o but_o admit_v she_o know_v it_o not_o shall_v the_o matrimony_n be_v firm_a gregory_n in_o the_o canon_n allege_v do_v counsel_n that_o they_o shall_v dwell_v together_o to_o the_o intent_n the_o woman_n if_o she_o can_v be_v a_o wife_n may_v be_v a_o sister_n but_o this_o he_o speak_v by_o counsel_n not_o by_o commandment_n for_o if_o she_o deny_v with_o loud_a voice_n and_o say_v that_o she_o will_v be_v a_o mother_n and_o bear_v child_n she_o be_v hear_v howbeit_o they_o make_v a_o condition_n namely_o that_o she_o shall_v gainsay_a it_o within_o the_o space_n of_o two_o month_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr frigidis_fw-la &_o maleficiatis_fw-la in_o the_o first_o canon_n see_v if_o she_o abide_v long_o she_o seem_v by_o her_o own_o consent_n to_o have_v confirm_v the_o marriage_n but_o the_o rigour_n of_o this_o law_n be_v not_o observe_v at_o this_o day_n but_o a_o long_a space_n of_o time_n be_v appoint_v and_o that_o justly_o for_o he_o perhaps_o may_v seem_v cold_a at_o the_o beginning_n which_o will_v not_o be_v so_o afterward_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v then_o if_o she_o gainsay_a it_o and_o yet_o allow_v it_o if_o the_o husband_n will_v stand_v at_o denial_n he_o must_v be_v credit_v but_o if_o he_o confess_v it_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v and_o leave_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o woman_n to_o provide_v a_o other_o marriage_n which_o nevertheless_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v do_v over_o hasty_o for_o they_o will_v have_v the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n to_o be_v expect_v to_o the_o end_n a_o long_o and_o a_o more_o sure_a experience_n may_v be_v have_v the_o same_o have_v the_o civil_a law_n judge_v justinian_n de_fw-fr repudijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n in_o causis_fw-la first_o assign_v two_o year_n but_o there_o in_o the_o paraph_n sed_fw-la body_n he_o assign_v three_o year_n and_o it_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o pope_n canon_n the_o same_o he_o have_v in_o the_o authentike_n in_o collatione_n 4._o in_o the_o paraph_n per_fw-la occasionem_fw-la namely_o that_o three_o year_n be_v give_v howbeit_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v on_o this_o wise_a unless_o a_o plain_a proof_n thereof_o can_v be_v have_v before_o because_o it_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o be_v defer_v but_o some_o man_n say_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o judge_n may_v be_v deceive_v that_o the_o disease_n may_v sometime_o be_v cure_v and_o that_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v sufficient_a that_o he_o may_v marry_v with_o a_o other_o and_o have_v child_n &_o that_o in_o conversation_n they_o may_v both_o of_o they_o sometime_o confess_v their_o coldness_n because_o they_o may_v find_v the_o mean_n to_o be_v separate_v if_o this_o shall_v happen_v they_o will_v that_o the_o man_n be_v afterward_o find_v fit_a for_o procreation_n shall_v renew_v his_o former_a marriage_n but_o this_o be_v not_o observe_v the_o same_o do_v they_o affirm_v of_o they_o which_o be_v hinder_v by_o devilish_a practice_n but_o because_o the_o devil_n do_v sometime_o hinder_v so_o as_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o use_v the_o company_n of_o one_o woman_n and_o not_o of_o another_o therefore_o matrimony_n be_v assign_v to_o be_v with_o she_o from_o who_o he_o be_v not_o let_v these_o thing_n be_v say_v touch_v woman_n divorce_n if_o the_o husband_n be_v ignorant_a before_o of_o his_o coldness_n he_o may_v require_v a_o divorce_n 73_o but_o if_o the_o man_n do_v either_o know_v or_o be_v ignorant_a that_o he_o be_v cold_a what_o then_o shall_v be_v do_v if_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o he_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n excuse_v &_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o ask_v a_o divorce_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v ease_v of_o the_o charge_n of_o marriage_n but_o if_o he_o know_v before_o that_o he_o have_v the_o disease_n of_o coldness_n he_o be_v compel_v to_o find_v and_o maintain_v his_o wife_n who_o he_o deceive_v the_o pope_n canon_n decree_v that_o he_o shall_v marry_v no_o more_o as_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o place_n a_o little_a before_o
promote_v if_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v a_o great_a need_n and_o he_o excel_v in_o virtue_n the_o manner_n of_o his_o birth_n shall_v be_v no_o let_v unto_o he_o 6._o 1._o tim._n 3_o 2._o titus_n 1_o 6._o for_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o to_o titus_n when_o he_o diligent_o write_v of_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v forbid_v none_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o man_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n bastard_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n i_o grant_v it_o nevertheless_o we_o be_v not_o now_o bind_v to_o that_o law_n &_o it_o be_v make_v only_o for_o the_o detestation_n of_o adultery_n yet_o now_o if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o profit_v the_o church_n great_o their_o election_n must_v not_o be_v forbid_v decretal_n a_o vain_a difference_n put_v by_o the_o decretal_n and_o it_o be_v vain_a which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o decretal_n that_o legitimate_v may_v be_v choose_v but_o bastard_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v except_o with_o dispensation_n as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr electionibus_fw-la for_o these_o counterfeit_a colour_n and_o deceit_n the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v invent_v to_o amplify_v their_o dominion_n but_o the_o judgement_n which_o i_o have_v allow_v agree_v with_o charity_n and_o we_o may_v gather_v the_o like_a of_o it_o out_o of_o the_o civil_a law_n where_o it_o treat_v de_fw-fr decurionibus_fw-la that_o be_v of_o captain_n over_o ten_o soldier_n since_o these_o be_v civil_a judge_n for_o private_a city_n and_o town_n wherefore_o it_o be_v decree_v decuriones_fw-la bastard_n may_v be_v make_v decuriones_fw-la that_o bastard_n may_v be_v make_v decuriones_fw-la if_o necessity_n so_o require_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr decurionibus_fw-la in_o the_o law_n generaliter_fw-la in_o paraph_n debet_fw-la enim_fw-la the_o law_n therefore_o will_v have_v that_o order_n namely_o of_o decuriones_fw-la to_o be_v full_a howbeit_o if_o another_o bear_v legitimate_a be_v a_o suitor_n together_o for_o the_o same_o he_o shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o bastard_n so_o think_v i_o that_o we_o must_v do_v in_o the_o church_n that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v as_o good_a and_o as_o apt_a for_o the_o ministry_n be_v a_o legitimate_a bear_v let_v consideration_n be_v have_v to_o he_o before_o the_o bastard_n who_o must_v give_v place_n in_o that_o case_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v legitimate_a it_o be_v add_v in_o the_o law_n if_o they_o be_v honest_a and_o good_a the_o blemish_n of_o birth_n shall_v nothing_o hinder_v they_o in_o the_o same_o title_n in_o the_o law_n spurios_fw-la and_o in_o the_o law_n follow_v these_o thing_n have_v i_o therefore_o mention_v that_o we_o may_v understand_v by_o what_o right_a jeptha_n be_v by_o his_o brethren_n thrust_v out_o and_o that_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perceive_v of_o adultery_n 17_o doubtless_o adultery_n be_v a_o gréevous_a sin_n chapter_n in_o 2._o sam._n 11._o 26._o how_o grievous_a a_o sin_n adultery_n be_v look_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n and_o how_o gréevous_a it_o be_v as_o tertullian_n gather_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogamia_fw-la we_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o contrary_a in_o compare_v the_o same_o unto_o matrimony_n let_v we_o consider_v wherein_o matrimony_n consist_v god_n make_v man_n and_o woman_n he_o join_v they_o together_o in_o one_o flesh_n wherein_o matrimony_n do_v stand_v and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o one_o flesh_n be_v rend_v and_o pull_v away_o so_o as_o a_o other_o be_v mingle_v and_o set_v in_o place_n adultery_n be_v commit_v this_o heinous_a crime_n have_v be_v forbid_v ever_o since_o the_o first_o original_n of_o mankind_n as_o many_o of_o the_o father_n have_v prove_v god_n make_v man_n and_o woman_n not_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v be_v content_a with_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o every_o wife_n with_o her_o own_o husband_n if_o now_o then_o a_o man_n be_v not_o content_a with_o his_o own_o wife_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v one_o wife_n but_o many_o man_n shall_v leave_v his_o father_n &_o mother_n 24._o gen._n 2_o 24._o and_o cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n if_o he_o be_v pull_v away_o doubtless_o he_o cleave_v not_o to_o she_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 51._o psalm_n in_o the_o first_o homily_n say_v that_o the_o fruit_n of_o adultery_n be_v murder_n and_o poison_v in_o his_o 42._o homily_n upon_o matthew_n he_o say_v that_o adulterous_a woman_n very_o oftentimes_o practice_v murder_n and_o that_o not_o of_o one_o man_n only_o but_o of_o all_o they_o also_o unto_o who_o they_o think_v that_o their_o infamy_n may_v come_v as_o do_v herodia_n jerom_n against_o jovinian_a towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n whatsoever_o tumult_n say_v he_o be_v in_o tragedy_n be_v the_o spite_n that_o be_v between_o marry_a wife_n and_o their_o husband_n harlot_n moreover_o agamemnon_n be_v slay_v by_o the_o adulterer_n aegistus_n atreus_n and_o thyestes_n by_o reason_n of_o adultery_n take_v in_o hand_n those_o cruel_a enterprise_n the_o ravish_v of_o helen_n stir_v up_o the_o most_o cruel_a war_n of_o troie_n in_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a sink_n of_o all_o evil_a cyprian_a in_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o his_o four_o book_n to_o antonius_n write_v that_o in_o the_o first_o time_n there_o be_v such_o bishop_n as_o will_v never_o let_v adulterer_n to_o rest_v in_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v other_o bishop_n that_o after_o a_o good_a space_n of_o time_n if_o they_o show_v forth_o any_o fruit_n of_o penance_n will_v reconcile_v they_o after_o a_o sort_n augustine_n in_o his_o 42._o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n the_o donatist_n allege_v this_o epistle_n and_o say_v that_o this_o diversity_n of_o custom_n the_o bishop_n have_v and_o yet_o they_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n will_v that_o matrimony_n shall_v not_o be_v break_v off_o and_o yet_o he_o so_o account_v of_o adultery_n as_o he_o make_v it_o the_o cause_n why_o matrimony_n shall_v be_v undoone_v by_o adultery_n the_o household_n be_v disquiet_v the_o bed_n itself_o be_v dishonour_v great_a injury_n be_v do_v unto_o the_o child_n for_o either_o they_o be_v bastard_n or_o else_o take_v for_o bastard_n bartholus_fw-la ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o pandect_n write_v about_o the_o title_n of_o the_o same_o book_n that_o adultery_n be_v the_o most_o gréevous_a crime_n of_o all_o other_o except_o treason_n to_o wit_n as_o concern_v civil_a regiment_n thales_n milesius_n judge_v that_o perjury_n be_v not_o a_o more_o gréevous_a sin_n than_o adultery_n for_o a_o certain_a adulterer_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v his_o oath_n that_o he_o commit_v not_o adultery_n and_o perjury_n say_v he_o be_v not_o worse_a than_o adultery_n idolatry_n whether_o adultery_n be_v a_o more_o grievous_a sin_n than_o idolatry_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 62._o homily_n upon_o john_n be_v bold_a to_o write_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o more_o gréevous_a sin_n than_o idolatry_n and_o he_o allow_v two_o reason_n both_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v derive_v from_o matrimony_n and_o the_o nature_n thereof_o which_o be_v write_v by_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 12._o 2._o cor._n 7_o 12._o where_o he_o decree_v that_o a_o believe_a husband_n may_v dwell_v with_o his_o unbelieve_a wife_n but_o he_o grant_v not_o that_o a_o adulterer_n may_v dwell_v together_o with_o a_o adulteress_n wherefore_o that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o more_o gréevous_a fault_n another_o reason_n be_v the_o beléeve_a wife_n be_v not_o defile_v with_o the_o company_n of_o her_o idolatrous_a husband_n but_o a_o adulteress_n be_v always_o pollute_a argument_n a_o false_a argument_n if_o she_o be_v join_v with_o a_o adulterer_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o thing_n more_o gréevous_a than_o idolatry_n but_o under_o correction_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o man_n i_o may_v say_v that_o the_o argument_n be_v weak_a we_o must_v not_o compare_v matrimony_n with_o idolatry_n but_o matrimony_n and_o adultery_n must_v be_v compare_v between_o themselves_o these_o two_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o one_o of_o they_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o the_o other_o be_v sin_n and_o whereas_o in_o matrimony_n the_o one_o part_n be_v sometime_o a_o unbeléever_n that_o happen_v by_o accident_n but_o the_o greatness_n of_o sin_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o come_v by_o chance_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o school_n which_o happen_v by_o accident_n a_o beléeve_a wife_n may_v dwell_v with_o a_o unbeléeve_a husband_n so_o he_o be_v willing_a thereunto_o for_o matrimony_n be_v a_o good_a thing_n it_o be_v not_o so_o pollute_v with_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o other_o party_n
this_o mischief_n to_o escape_v unpunished_a if_o we_o give_v credit_n to_o strabo_n in_o the_o 16._o book_n of_o his_o geography_n the_o arabian_n make_v it_o death_n in_o arabia_n where_o spice_n grow_v the_o same_o punishment_n be_v provide_v for_o adulterer_n arabian_n of_o the_o arabian_n as_o eusebius_n say_v in_o his_o sixth_o book_n &_o eight_o chapter_n de_fw-fr praeparatione_fw-la evangelica_fw-la egyptian_n of_o the_o egyptian_n the_o egyptian_n as_o diodorus_n siculus_n report_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o bibliotheca_fw-la do_v cut_v off_o the_o nose_n of_o a_o adulteress_n that_o the_o face_n of_o she_o which_o be_v so_o please_v may_v be_v deform_v the_o adulterer_n be_v beat_v with_o a_o thousand_o stripe_n even_o well_o near_o unto_o death_n aelianus_n in_o his_o history_n of_o variety_n the_o 13._o book_n write_v locris_n of_o they_o of_o locris_n that_o zeleucus_n the_o lawemaker_n of_o locris_n ordain_v that_o a_o adulterer_n shall_v have_v both_o his_o eye_n put_v out_o the_o same_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o hard_a law_n within_o a_o while_n after_o it_o happen_v that_o his_o own_o son_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n the_o people_n will_v have_v release_v he_o from_o punishment_n but_o the_o father_n will_v not_o and_o to_o the_o intent_n the_o same_o law_n may_v after_o some_o sort_n be_v keep_v he_o will_v that_o one_o of_o his_o son_n eye_n and_o another_o of_o his_o own_o shall_v be_v pull_v out_o there_o be_v a_o people_n which_o suidas_n call_v laciadae_n laciade_n of_o the_o laciade_n and_o other_o placiadae_n among_o who_o adulterer_n be_v torment_v with_o punishment_n and_o ignominy_n about_o the_o secret_a part_n german_n of_o the_o german_n also_o the_o german_n if_o we_o believe_v cornelius_n tacitus_n be_v most_o severe_a punisher_n of_o adultery_n for_o the_o adulteress_n be_v take_v with_o the_o manner_n be_v set_v naked_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o her_o kindred_n the_o hair_n of_o her_o head_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o after_o that_o she_o be_v by_o her_o husband_n beat_v through_o the_o town_n with_o a_o cudgel_n gortinei_n of_o the_o gortinei_n plutarch_n in_o his_o problem_n write_v that_o the_o gortinaei_n when_o they_o have_v apprehend_v a_o adulterer_n they_o bring_v he_o forth_o open_o and_o crown_v he_o with_o wool_n whereby_o they_o may_v show_v he_o to_o be_v a_o wanton_a and_o effeminate_a person_n after_o which_o time_n he_o live_v in_o perpetual_a infamy_n among_o they_o cumei_n of_o the_o cumei_n the_o people_n call_v cumaei_n set_v a_o adulteress_n in_o the_o market_n place_n upon_o a_o infamous_a stone_n and_o there_o of_o the_o people_n be_v put_v to_o shame_n then_o be_v set_v upon_o a_o ass_n she_o be_v carry_v through_o the_o city_n afterward_o in_o way_n of_o ignominy_n it_o be_v say_v unto_o she_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d saletus_n a_o citizen_n of_o croton_n as_o lucianus_n write_v of_o they_o croton_n of_o the_o man_n of_o croton_n which_o be_v hire_v serve_v for_o reward_n make_v a_o law_n that_o adulterer_n shall_v be_v burn_v alive_a within_o a_o while_n after_o he_o himself_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n with_o his_o brother_n wife_n he_o be_v accuse_v make_v a_o oration_n wherein_o he_o so_o defend_v himself_o that_o all_o man_n bend_v their_o mind_n to_o pardon_v he_o but_o he_o consider_v with_o himself_o how_o shameful_a a_o offence_n he_o have_v commit_v leap_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n into_o the_o fire_n and_o among_o the_o philosopher_n plato_n law_n plato_n law_n in_o his_o eight_o book_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la say_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o great_a &_o horrible_a offence_n when_o the_o husband_n go_v to_o another_o than_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o the_o wife_n unto_o another_o than_o her_o own_o husband_n further_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v our_o body_n chaste_a and_o not_o to_o bestow_v they_o upon_o strumpet_n and_o harlot_n they_o say_v he_o that_o shall_v do_v that_o be_v in_o perpetual_a infamy_n aristotle_n in_o his_o seven_o book_n of_o politik_n aristotle_n of_o aristotle_n in_o the_o last_o chapter_n save_o one_o write_v thus_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v have_v carnal_a copulation_n with_o she_o that_o be_v not_o his_o own_o or_o any_o woman_n with_o he_o that_o be_v not_o her_o own_o let_v that_o be_v count_v among_o most_o shameful_a thing_n so_o as_o they_o note_v adulterer_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o be_v infamous_a diogenes_n the_o cynik_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n for_o it_o happen_v that_o a_o certain_a man_n call_v didymus_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n diogenes_n of_o diogenes_n and_o diogenes_n be_v demand_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o he_o answer_v that_o according_a to_o his_o own_o name_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v hang_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o grecian_n be_v the_o stone_n of_o a_o man_n or_o of_o a_o beast_n in_o old_a time_n among_o the_o athenians_n athenians_n of_o the_o athenians_n adultery_n be_v a_o capital_a crime_n as_o pausanias_n in_o his_o boetik_n show_v he_o cit_v the_o law_n of_o draco_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a among_o the_o athenians_n to_o slay_v a_o adulterer_n that_o be_v take_v with_o the_o deed_n do_v and_o even_o this_o do_v the_o oration_n of_o lysias_n testify_v wherein_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o death_n of_o eratosthenes_n the_o adulterer_n the_o adulteress_n be_v not_o strait_a way_n put_v to_o death_n but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o she_o to_o come_v into_o holy_a assembly_n otherwise_o she_o may_v have_v all_o manner_n of_o ignominy_n do_v unto_o she_o by_o any_o person_n only_o the_o punishment_n of_o death_n except_v not_o for_o that_o they_o do_v take_v pity_n of_o she_o but_o that_o they_o may_v give_v she_o the_o long_a torment_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o oration_n of_o demosthenes_n against_o neaera_n if_o the_o same_o be_v he_o polybius_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o history_n if_o a_o adulterer_n be_v slay_v say_v he_o let_v the_o executioner_n go_v free_a he_o seem_v to_o speak_v this_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o grecian_n for_o he_o be_v a_o grecian_a borne_n how_o great_o the_o grecian_n be_v move_v for_o the_o adultery_n and_o violent_a take_v away_o of_o helen_n all_o man_n know_v greek_n of_o the_o greek_n which_o have_v any_o small_a skill_n of_o the_o poet_n mahumet_n of_o mahumet_n mahumet_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o law_n will_v have_v adulterer_n to_o be_v whip_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o death_n the_o goth_n make_v a_o law_n of_o death_n against_o adulterer_n goth_n of_o the_o goth_n as_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o procopius_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la gothico_n many_o thing_n of_o sundry_a nation_n may_v be_v recite_v but_o these_o for_o this_o time_n shall_v suffice_v 24_o i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o roman_a law_n adulteris_fw-la the_o roman_a law_n touch_v adulteris_fw-la dionysius_n halicarnassaeus_n commend_v romulus_n the_o first_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o that_o he_o will_v have_v by_o his_o law_n matrimony_n to_o be_v inviolate_a and_o yet_o so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v find_v he_o make_v not_o adultery_n to_o be_v punishable_a by_o death_n divorce_n be_v permit_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o adultery_n yea_o and_o afterward_o for_o the_o suspicion_n of_o adultery_n a_o put_v away_o of_o the_o adulteress_n be_v admit_v and_o so_o do_v caesar_n for_o he_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n pompeia_n find_v she_o with_o clodius_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o head_n bishop_n but_o he_o be_v afterward_o bid_v to_o declare_v against_o her_o some_o witness_n of_o adultery_n he_o will_v not_o and_o be_v demand_v wherefore_o he_o have_v then_o put_v she_o away_o he_o answer_v that_o his_o house_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v free_a from_o the_o filthiness_n of_o adultery_n but_o also_o from_o the_o very_a suspicion_n thereof_o table_n the_o law_n of_o the_o twelve_o table_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o twelve_o table_n a_o adulterer_n be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o in_o so_o much_o as_o belong_v to_o public_a punishment_n it_o seem_v that_o in_o those_o former_a age_n they_o be_v more_o easy_a tacitus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n declare_v thing_n other_o old_a law_n of_o this_o thing_n that_o a_o certain_a man_n be_v accuse_v of_o treason_n and_o of_o adultery_n in_o the_o time_n of_o tiberius_n caesar_n and_o tothe_v adultery_n it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v wary_o enough_o provide_v for_o by_o the_o law_n julia._n but_o tiberius_n who_o about_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o reign_n be_v gentle_a do_v by_o entreaty_n put_v away_o those_o great_a punishment_n and_o say_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o ancestor_n let_v the_o adulteress_n be_v remoove_v two_o hundred_o mile_n from_o the_o city_n and_o the_o adulterer_n be_v banish_v both_o out_o of_o italy_n and_o aphrica_n we_o read_v in_o
the_o ten_o book_n of_o titus_n livius_n that_o one_o fabius_n gurges_n which_o be_v censor_n have_v condemn_v many_o matron_n of_o adultery_n the_o amercement_n that_o they_o pay_v be_v money_n of_o the_o which_o money_n he_o afterward_o build_v a_o temple_n unto_o venus_n out_o of_o the_o oration_n of_o m._n cato_n which_o be_v rehearse_v by_o aulus_n gellius_n in_o the_o ten_o book_n gellius_n aulus_n gellius_n and_o the_o title_n be_v de_fw-fr dote_v we_o may_v perceive_v that_o before_o the_o law_n julia_n be_v make_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o slay_v both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n augustine_n in_o the_o three_o book_n and_o five_o chapter_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v whoredom_n woman_n bury_v quick_a for_o whoredom_n that_o the_o ancient_a roman_n use_v to_o bury_v the_o vestal_a virgin_n alive_a if_o they_o have_v commit_v whoredom_n but_o that_o they_o do_v not_o deal_v so_o sevearelie_o in_o punish_v of_o adulterer_n he_o say_v that_o they_o rather_o protect_v the_o temple_n of_o their_o idol_n than_o their_o own_o wedlock_n and_o no_o marvel_n it_o be_v for_o they_o worship_v adulterous_a god_n jupiter_n mars_n and_o venus_n after_o that_o time_n be_v the_o law_n julia_n make_v whereof_o there_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o digest_v and_o in_o the_o code_n many_o do_v false_o imagine_v that_o the_o same_o law_n have_v be_v make_v by_o julius_n caesar_n it_o be_v make_v by_o augustus_n who_o be_v also_o call_v julius_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o adopt_a son_n and_o heir_n of_o julius_n caesar_n suetonius_n say_v that_o he_o make_v this_o law_n and_o he_o make_v it_o upon_o just_a cause_n for_o his_o daughter_n julia_n and_o a_o néece_n that_o he_o have_v be_v most_o licentious_a monster_n the_o emperor_n use_v to_o call_v they_o his_o rot_a impostem_n when_o he_o have_v make_v the_o law_n there_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o a_o young_a man_n take_v in_o adultery_n with_o his_o daughter_n julia._n the_o which_o the_o emperor_n take_v in_o so_o evil_a part_n as_o he_o slay_v at_o he_o with_o his_o fist_n the_o young_a man_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n cry_v out_o thou_o caesar_n only_a have_v set_v down_o this_o law_n caesar_n for_o that_o he_o be_v blame_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o inconstant_a man_n will_v not_o eat_v his_o supper_n for_o sorrow_n by_o this_o julian_n law_n where_o first_o husband_n when_o the_o power_n of_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n be_v take_v from_o the_o husband_n in_o the_o time_n of_o cato_n it_o have_v be_v lawful_a to_o thrust_v through_o both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n then_o be_v this_o power_n take_v from_o the_o husband_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n only_o in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la in_o the_o law_n marito_fw-la and_o in_o the_o code_n in_o the_o same_o title_n in_o the_o law_n gracchus_n yet_o i_o read_v in_o suetonius_n that_o claudius_n caesar_n kill_v messalina_n under_o the_o name_n of_o adultery_n but_o for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v a_o emperor_n he_o do_v what_o he_o will_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o husband_n to_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n although_o not_o absolute_o but_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v with_o the_o manner_n and_o in_o his_o own_o house_n neither_o may_v he_o do_v it_o to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o one_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o noble_a man_n unto_o who_o he_o ought_v a_o reverence_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a yet_o may_v he_o keep_v he_o shut_v up_o in_o his_o house_n 24._o hour_n until_o he_o do_v bring_v witness_n we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v some_o exception_n of_o person_n why_o leave_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o husband_n to_o kill_v his_o wife_n a_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v husband_n do_v sometime_o bear_v hatred_n unto_o their_o wife_n when_o they_o be_v contentious_a or_o deform_a they_o may_v covet_v to_o gain_v a_o dowry_n and_o to_o marry_v a_o other_o woman_n therefore_o the_o law_n will_v not_o condescend_v that_o the_o wife_n shall_v be_v slay_v howbeit_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o father_n of_o the_o adulteress_n to_o slay_v both_o as_o well_o in_o his_o own_o house_n as_o in_o the_o house_n of_o his_o son_n in_o law_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_n but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n unless_o he_o also_o kill_v his_o daughter_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o that_o nature_n teach_v the_o parent_n to_o love_v their_o child_n hearty_o whereby_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o will_v not_o slay_v his_o daughter_n unless_o she_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n 25_o seneca_n in_o his_o first_o declamation_n seneca_n seneca_n seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v they_o both_o for_o he_o put_v this_o case_n a_o certain_a soldier_n which_o have_v lose_v his_o hand_n in_o war_n find_v his_o wife_n to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o a_o adulterer_n even_o while_o the_o act_n be_v commit_v he_o call_v his_o son_n to_o slay_v they_o the_o son_n refuse_v to_o obey_v wherefore_o the_o father_n reject_v his_o son_n it_o be_v demand_v whether_o he_o do_v this_o justly_o or_o no_o but_o perhaps_o seneca_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o cato_n but_o if_o so_o be_v the_o husband_n when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o fury_n have_v kill_v his_o wife_n be_v a_o adulteress_n he_o by_o the_o roman_a law_n shall_v have_v easy_a punishment_n than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o absolute_a murther●e_n for_o he_o fall_v not_o into_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o law_n cornelia_n of_o murderer_n his_o punishment_n be_v erile_fw-la which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o pandect_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la corneliam_fw-la de_fw-la sicarijs_fw-la in_o the_o first_o and_o three_o law_n whereupon_o when_o it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o canonist_n the_o 33._o cause_n question_v the_o second_o in_o the_o chapter_n inter_fw-la haec_fw-la that_o sometime_o it_o be_v lawful_a by_o the_o roman_a law_n to_o kill_v a_o wife_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n &_o not_o by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o altogether_o so_o but_o because_o the_o punishment_n be_v light_a after_o a_o sort_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v lawful_a or_o else_o perhaps_o they_o which_o make_v those_o canon_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o law_n of_o lombardie_n in_o the_o which_o that_o be_v lawful_a let_v we_o also_o add_v that_o the_o husband_n may_v by_o the_o roman_a law_n slay_v the_o adulterer_n not_o only_a when_o he_o take_v he_o at_o home_n with_o the_o manner_n so_o as_o he_o can_v not_o deny_v it_o but_o also_o out_o of_o the_o house_n when_o the_o case_n be_v so_o that_o he_o be_v suspect_v and_o that_o the_o husband_n can_v bring_v testimony_n that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o warn_v once_o twice_o &_o thrice_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v communication_n with_o his_o wife_n howbeit_o if_o he_o have_v find_v they_o talk_v familiar_o together_o in_o the_o temple_n or_o place_n of_o prayer_n than_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a so_o to_o do_v but_o they_o be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o bishop_n or_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v many_o way_n against_o the_o put_n of_o they_o to_o death_n neither_o will_v they_o give_v licence_n to_o kill_v they_o it_o seem_v that_o those_o first_o canonist_n be_v lead_v with_o a_o desire_n of_o save_v soul_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v upon_o the_o sudden_a without_o repentance_n the_o latter_a canonist_n favour_v this_o matter_n perhaps_o because_o they_o more_o than_o other_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o the_o chastity_n of_o other_o man_n wife_n wherefore_o there_o be_v many_o punishment_n for_o adultery_n provide_v by_o this_o law_n julia._n adultery_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o law_n julia_n touch_v adultery_n first_o the_o crime_n be_v bring_v before_o public_a assembly_n the_o accusation_n be_v admit_v not_o rash_o forsooth_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a order_n the_o wife_n if_o she_o accuse_v her_o husband_n of_o adultery_n be_v not_o hear_v but_o she_o herself_o be_v accuse_v the_o first_o place_n be_v give_v to_o the_o husband_n the_o second_o to_o the_o father_n brethren_n and_o uncle_n also_o may_v accuse_v and_o afterward_o at_o certain_a time_n place_n be_v give_v unto_o stranger_n divorsement_n be_v ordain_v between_o they_o they_o lest_o the_o dowry_n and_o donation_n which_o come_v by_o marriage_n both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o adulteress_n become_v infamous_a but_o after_o sundry_a fashion_n the_o adulterer_n not_o unless_o he_o be_v condemn_v the_o adulteress_n so_o soon_o as_o she_o be_v attach_v and_o there_o be_v some_o certain_a peculiar_a thing_n in_o the_o crime_n itself_o accuser_n it_o be_v not_o
donation_n grant_v in_o respect_n of_o marriage_n whereas_o the_o adulterer_n sustein_v no_o loss_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr donationibus_fw-la inter_fw-la virum_fw-la &_o vxorem_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n plerúnque_fw-fr in_o the_o end_n adam_n and_o eve_n be_v find_v to_o be_v in_o one_o kind_n of_o sin_n have_v not_o both_o one_o punishment_n eve_n be_v punish_v more_o gréevouslie_o woman_n that_o adulterous_a man_n sin_n more_o greevouslie_o than_o the_o woman_n 31_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o cause_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o great_a which_o persuade_v otherwise_o the_o first_o be_v that_o a_o woman_n be_v more_o weak_a and_o unperfect_a than_o a_o man_n she_o want_v understanding_n and_o judgement_n these_o thing_n seem_v to_o serve_v for_o diminish_v the_o fault_n and_o many_o law_n persuade_v we_o that_o in_o punish_v we_o shall_v have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o sex_n some_o of_o the_o law_n i_o will_v recite_v in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la peculatus_fw-la it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o punishment_n there_o must_v be_v consideration_n have_v of_o the_o sex_n the_o law_n begin_v sacrilegij_fw-la poenam_fw-la also_o ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi adulterum_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n fratres_n and_o in_o the_o paraph_n jacestam_fw-la they_o will_v have_v a_o difference_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o in_o the_o sex_n because_o woman_n be_v not_o force_v to_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o law_n sometime_o they_o be_v deceive_v they_o think_v that_o to_o be_v lawful_a which_o be_v not_o lawful_a also_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n teach_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o the_o sex_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr homicidio_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi dignum_fw-la in_o the_o code_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la maiestatis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n quisquis_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n filias_fw-la there_o be_v more_o favour_n show_v to_o the_o daughter_n of_o conspirator_n than_o unto_o their_o son_n in_o the_o decree_n cause_n 32._o question_n 6_o the_o chapter_n indignatur_fw-la there_o be_v consideration_n have_v of_o woman_n even_o in_o the_o self_n same_o cause_n of_o adultery_n there_o be_v saieng_n also_o of_o most_o excellent_a man_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o this_o sentence_n augustine_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr adulterinis_fw-la coniugijs_fw-la ad_fw-la pollentium_fw-la cit_v the_o letter_n write_v by_o antonius_n pius_n which_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o gregorian_a code_n that_o it_o be_v very_o unjust_a that_o man_n shall_v require_v that_o faith_n of_o woman_n which_o themselves_o will_v not_o show_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr adulterio_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi uxor_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n si_fw-mi iudex_fw-la it_o be_v command_v that_o if_o the_o judge_n have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o adultery_n let_v he_o look_v whether_o the_o husband_n have_v live_v chaste_o and_o so_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v mitigate_v because_o the_o man_n themselves_o by_o their_o ill_a live_n be_v cause_n of_o their_o unclean_a life_n whereupon_o seneca_n in_o his_o 94._o epistle_n unto_o lucillus_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o unjust_a thing_n for_o man_n to_o exact_a faithfulness_n of_o woman_n when_o as_o they_o themselves_o be_v the_o corrupter_n of_o other_o man_n wife_n neither_o do_v augustine_n put_v this_o matter_n in_o silence_n who_o say_v that_o virro_n that_o be_v to_o say_v man_n have_v his_o name_n of_o virtus_n that_o be_v virtue_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o ought_v to_o excel_v the_o wife_n in_o all_o virtue_n and_o chastity_n in_o his_o little_a book_n de_fw-fr decem_fw-la chordis_fw-la and_o it_o be_v also_o read_v in_o the_o 32._o cause_n question_v 5._o in_o the_o chapter_n non_fw-fr moechaberis_fw-la say_v that_o the_o husband_n be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o wife_n if_o the_o head_n fall_v into_o adultery_n and_o the_o wife_n be_v chaste_a he_o be_v a_o man_n turn_v upside_o down_o the_o head_n be_v under_o the_o foot_n it_o happen_v ofttimes_o that_o the_o adultery_n of_o the_o wife_n be_v revengement_n of_o a_o adulterous_a husband_n it_o be_v say_v of_o clytaemnestra_n that_o she_o give_v the_o power_n of_o her_o body_n to_o aegistus_n because_o she_o hear_v that_o agamemnon_n prefer_v chrysis_n before_o she_o that_o such_o a_o punishment_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n it_o appear_v that_o job_n understand_v who_o in_o the_o 31._o cha_n say_v 9_o verse_n 9_o if_o my_o hart_n have_v be_v carry_v aside_o to_o a_o strange_a woman_n and_o if_o i_o have_v lie_v in_o wait_n at_o my_o neighbour_n door_n then_o let_v my_o wife_n grind_v unto_o a_o other_o man_n and_o let_v she_o yield_v her_o body_n to_o other_o man_n so_o then_o there_o be_v reason_n to_o be_v make_v on_o both_o part_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v if_o credit_n be_v give_v to_o the_o schoole-divines_a question_n a_o unfolding_n of_o the_o question_n the_o distinction_n must_v be_v make_v which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o sentence_n in_o the_o 35._o distinction_n if_o the_o faith_n of_o wedlock_n be_v consider_v the_o sin_n be_v equal_a on_o both_o part_n either_o be_v bind_v unto_o other_o whether_o the_o woman_n give_v herself_o to_o another_o or_o else_o the_o man_n commit_v adultery_n if_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o person_n be_v respect_v see_v man_n be_v the_o more_o perfect_a he_o have_v the_o firm_a judgement_n and_o aught_o to_o excel_v his_o wife_n his_o sin_n be_v more_o gréevous_a than_o she_o howbeit_o if_o we_o note_v the_o confusion_n of_o thing_n the_o suppose_a heir_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o family_n the_o woman_n be_v more_o gréevouslie_o charge_v but_o as_o touch_v the_o very_a law_n itself_o of_o wedlock_n they_o say_v well_o that_o the_o bond_n be_v all_o alike_o that_o sin_n be_v commit_v as_o well_o by_o the_o one_o as_o by_o the_o other_o they_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o equality_n equality_n we_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n unto_o one_o adam_n the_o lord_n give_v one_o eve_n and_o to_o one_o eve_n he_o give_v one_o adam_n and_o he_o say_v 24._o gen._n 2_o 24._o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n paul_n when_o he_o treat_v of_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n say_v that_o the_o wife_n have_v not_o power_n over_o her_o own_o body_n 4._o verse_n 4._o but_o the_o husband_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o make_v this_o law_n equal_a to_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o neither_o do_v he_o speak_v unto_o the_o one_o party_n of_o render_v due_a benevolence_n but_o unto_o they_o both_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v think_v good_a to_o sever_v themselves_o for_o prayer_n sake_n he_o will_v that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v by_o both_o their_o consent_n in_o case_n of_o religion_n if_o they_o will_v not_o dwell_v together_o each_o party_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n the_o same_o be_v also_o speak_v there_o concern_v the_o unbeléeving_a husband_n the_o law_n of_o god_n command_v that_o both_o as_o well_o the_o adulterer_n as_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v be_v slay_v see_v therefore_o he_o make_v this_o equality_n we_o also_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o same_o argument_n a_o answer_n unto_o the_o contrary_a argument_n 32_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o argument_n it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o woman_n must_v not_o be_v hear_v this_o law_n be_v civil_a and_o refuse_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o that_o justly_o first_o to_o the_o first_o jerom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o oceanus_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o fabiola_n write_v a_o very_a excellent_a sentence_n those_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v command_v unto_o man_n do_v redound_v unto_o woman_n wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o start_v from_o his_o wife_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o adultery_n it_o be_v also_o lawful_a unto_o the_o wife_n among_o we_o there_o be_v the_o same_o liberty_n and_o the_o same_o bondage_n unto_o both_o party_n to_o correct_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o civil_a law_n both_o party_n must_v be_v hear_v touch_v infamy_n also_o second_o to_o the_o second_o it_o be_v man_n ordinance_n even_o as_o praise_n be_v call_v the_o celebration_n of_o other_o man_n virtue_n so_o infamy_n be_v to_o dispraise_v that_o which_o be_v in_o another_o and_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v speak_v more_o of_o woman_n than_o of_o man_n but_o with_o god_n this_o fame_n be_v of_o no_o importance_n there_o be_v more_o speak_v of_o the_o woman_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o harm_n which_o they_o bring_v and_o because_o they_o make_v a_o confusion_n in_o family_n three_o to_o the_o three_o as_o concern_v that_o it_o have_v be_v lawful_a for_o man_n to_o kill_v their_o wife_n and_o not_o for_o the_o wife_n their_o husband_n
i_o answer_v if_o it_o be_v lawful_a yet_o that_o law_n be_v not_o just_a as_o the_o father_n thought_n i_o add_v it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a unto_o woman_n for_o they_o handle_v not_o weapon_n but_o be_v subject_a unto_o man_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o be_v some_o inequality_n and_o in_o that_o there_o be_v use_v to_o be_v a_o put_v away_o of_o the_o woman_n by_o the_o man_n four_o to_o the_o four_o i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o decree_n of_o man_n as_o jerom_n cit_v in_o the_o sentence_n now_o allege_v assure_o theodosius_n as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr repudijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n consensus_fw-la give_v authority_n unto_o the_o wife_n to_o put_v away_o their_o husband_n and_o he_o declare_v many_o cause_n why_o there_o be_v a_o excellent_a place_n of_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o decree_n cause_n 32._o question_n the_o five_o in_o the_o chapter_n christiana_n religio_fw-la where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o adultery_n be_v condemn_v in_o both_o sex_n alike_o and_o because_o some_o be_v offend_v for_o that_o they_o see_v man_n oftentimes_o put_v away_o their_o wife_n and_o wife_n to_o be_v more_o often_o excommunicate_v for_o adultery_n than_o husband_n answer_n be_v make_v that_o it_o be_v not_o because_o sin_n be_v lesser_a in_o man_n than_o in_o woman_n but_o for_o that_o man_n may_v have_v more_o free_a authority_n against_o the_o woman_n and_o therefore_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o church_n do_v not_o judge_v unless_o it_o be_v in_o matter_n which_o be_v manifest_a it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o woman_n be_v more_o often_o take_v than_o man_n and_o be_v excommunicate_v &_o suffer_v divorsement_n also_o we_o know_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n 1._o deut._n 24_o 1._o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o man_n to_o give_v a_o bill_n of_o divorsement_n unto_o woman_n but_o contrariwise_o that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o woman_n therefore_o it_o seem_v that_o god_n do_v attribute_n more_o unto_o man_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o case_n must_v be_v weigh_v for_o the_o which_o god_n will_v have_v this_o bill_n of_o divorsement_n to_o be_v give_v it_o have_v be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o man_n to_o kill_v their_o wife_n when_o as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v rid_v of_o they_o but_o this_o be_v less_o to_o be_v fear_v of_o woman_n because_o it_o do_v seldome_a happen_v another_o argument_n be_v five_o to_o the_o five_o that_o it_o be_v provide_v by_o the_o law_n that_o if_o a_o woman_n couple_v herself_o with_o another_o man_n bondman_n or_o keep_v shameful_a company_n with_o he_o she_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o bondage_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o ordain_v against_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v become_v slave_n according_a as_o vespasian_n persuade_v the_o senate_n of_o rome_n as_o suetonius_n report_v but_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o man_n make_v this_o decree_n if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o woman_n to_o have_v decree_v the_o same_o they_o will_v have_v provide_v otherwise_o moreover_o it_o appear_v that_o plato_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o law_n count_v both_o alike_o both_o the_o man_n which_o keep_v unlawful_a company_n with_o bond_n woman_n and_o the_o woman_n which_o do_v the_o like_a with_o bondman_n beside_o they_o that_o will_v make_v a_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o danger_n of_o that_o say_n of_o paul_n 1_o rom._n 2_o 1_o in_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o thou_o iudge_v another_o thou_o condemne_v thyself_o for_o thou_o do_v even_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o thou_o iudge_v but_o it_o be_v add_v that_o lust_n have_v always_o be_v count_v a_o more_o shameful_a thing_n in_o woman_n than_o in_o man_n sixth_o to_o the_o sixth_o of_o who_o have_v it_o be_v so_o account_v of_o man_n but_o will_v we_o say_v be_v it_o so_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o will_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n man_n and_o woman_n undoubted_o be_v all_o of_o one_o lump_n further_o woman_n be_v the_o unperfect_a and_o of_o the_o less_o judgement_n it_o be_v man_n part_n to_o guide_v they_o and_o to_o have_v charge_n of_o they_o how_o can_v the_o lust_n be_v more_o filthy_a in_o woman_n than_o in_o man_n unless_o perhaps_o we_o will_v have_v this_o respect_n that_o woman_n shame_n be_v more_o manifest_a they_o become_v with_o child_n the_o matter_n apéer_v the_o show_n be_v more_o evident_a in_o they_o but_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o commandment_n and_o law_n of_o god_n the_o case_n be_v all_o one_o with_o they_o both_o 33_o but_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o man_n that_o if_o a_o man_n join_v in_o matrimony_n have_v copulation_n with_o a_o woman_n be_v free_a and_o at_o liberty_n he_o commit_v not_o adultery_n but_o that_o whensoever_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v marry_v have_v copulation_n with_o a_o other_o she_o be_v count_v a_o adulteress_n so_o as_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n to_o dissolve_v this_o reason_n many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v say_v adultery_n the_o etymology_n of_o adultery_n first_o if_o we_o seek_v the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n adultery_n it_o signify_v to_o go_v to_o the_o wedlock_n bed_n of_o a_o other_o wherefore_o in_o what_o sort_n so_o ever_o it_o be_v do_v be_v it_o of_o man_n or_o woman_n it_o be_v all_o one_o indeed_o i_o know_v that_o the_o civil_a law_n have_v judge_v and_o determine_v that_o it_o be_v adultery_n when_o there_o be_v wicked_a society_n with_o a_o marry_a woman_n for_o if_o the_o same_o be_v either_o widow_n or_o virgin_n they_o say_v it_o be_v whoredom_n and_o that_o adultery_n be_v only_o to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o she_o that_o be_v marry_v this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lawyer_n as_o appear_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n which_o begin_v inter_fw-la liberas_fw-la personas_fw-la define_v adultery_n define_v whereupon_o azo_n a_o famous_a lawyer_n define_v adultery_n to_o be_v the_o lie_v with_o the_o wife_n or_o spouse_n of_o a_o other_o man_n and_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o which_o i_o add_v because_o jerom_n in_o his_o 2._o treatise_n against_o jovinian_a towards_o the_o end_n write_v the_o opinion_n of_o xystus_n one_o of_o pythagoras_n sect_n that_o if_o the_o husband_n moderate_v not_o himself_o in_o concupiscence_n with_o his_o wife_n he_o commit_v adultery_n but_o this_o be_v not_o proper_a adultery_n the_o deflower_v of_o concubine_n or_o handmaiden_n which_o be_v join_v in_o marriage_n with_o bondman_n be_v not_o take_v for_o adultery_n indeed_o it_o be_v sin_n and_o there_o be_v a_o action_n commense_v either_o of_o the_o law_n aquilia_n or_o else_o of_o trespass_n as_o against_o a_o servant_n corrupt_v but_o not_o to_o appeach_v he_o of_o adultery_n but_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v otherwise_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o lawyer_n by_o their_o leave_n have_v not_o well_o define_v adultery_n this_o do_v chrysostome_n note_n who_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o write_v thus_o the_o roman_a law_n punish_v woman_n which_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n but_o man_n they_o do_v not_o punish_v yet_o god_n will_v punish_v they_o for_o without_o all_o doubt_n it_o be_v adultery_n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la the_o 18._o chapter_n say_v that_o they_o be_v adulterer_n which_o have_v other_o man_n wife_n in_o place_n of_o their_o own_o and_o adulteress_n which_o have_v other_o woman_n husband_n and_o so_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o use_v a_o strange_a man_n in_o steed_n of_o her_o own_o commit_v adultery_n the_o same_o augustine_n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi coniugali_fw-la contra_fw-la jovinianum_fw-la the_o four_o chapter_n write_v adultery_n an_o other_o definition_n of_o adultery_n that_o adultery_n be_v a_o violate_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o wedlock_n when_o a_o man_n therefore_o have_v access_n to_o a_o other_o man_n wife_n whether_o she_o be_v free_a or_o knit_v in_o marriage_n adultery_n be_v commit_v by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o husband_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v it_o be_v adultery_n when_o there_o be_v carnal_a fellowship_n with_o a_o other_o man_n or_o a_o other_o woman_n against_o the_o covenant_n of_o marriage_n how_o oft_o therefore_o so_o ever_o it_o be_v do_v against_o this_o covenant_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o augustine_n it_o be_v adultery_n if_o i_o shall_v define_v it_o thus_o will_v i_o say_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o venereous_a action_n wherein_o there_o be_v carnal_a fellowship_n with_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o itself_o by_o the_o law_n of_o matrimony_n but_o unto_o a_o other_o now_o let_v we_o see_v the_o part_n of_o the_o definition_n action_n be_v the_o genus_fw-la or_o general_a word_n and_o because_o the_o action_n of_o man_n be_v diverse_a venereous_a be_v add_v for_o the_o difference_n again_o there_o be_v
say_n we_o have_v in_o the_o decretal_n de_fw-fr adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi vir_fw-la sciens_fw-la and_o it_o be_v the_o council_n of_o arles_n a_o man_n which_o retain_v a_o adulteress_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o crime_n also_o if_o a_o woman_n be_v put_v away_o shall_v be_v marry_v to_o a_o other_o although_o her_o latter_a husband_n be_v dead_a she_o may_v not_o return_v to_o the_o first_o for_o she_o be_v now_o become_v unclean_a unto_o he_o as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 4._o verse_n 4._o reconciliation_n reason_n which_o make_v for_o reconciliation_n 40_o but_o now_o pass_v we_o over_o these_o thing_n and_o let_v we_o see_v the_o reason_n which_o make_v for_o reconciliation_n that_o most_o mighty_a and_o excellent_a god_n of_o we_o will_v be_v the_o spouse_n of_o his_o church_n and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o this_o our_o age_n but_o also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o father_n howbeit_o the_o church_n special_o in_o old_a time_n do_v oftentimes_o decline_v unto_o idolatry_n and_o play_v the_o harlot_n with_o the_o god_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o sundry_a place_n in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n and_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n 1._o jerem._n 3_o 1._o yet_o nevertheless_o jeremie_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n call_v she_o home_o that_o she_o may_v return_v again_o to_o her_o husband_n and_o even_o so_o do_v the_o prophet_n ose_n and_o that_o with_o many_o speech_n 19_o ose_n 2_o 19_o and_o if_o god_n be_v ready_a to_o receive_v his_o adulterous_a wife_n man_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o his_o wife_n especial_o if_o she_o fall_v from_o her_o error_n and_o repent_v for_o how_o many_o so_o ever_o be_v christian_n they_o profess_v the_o follow_v of_o god_n there_o be_v extant_a a_o example_n of_o david_n 14_o 2._o sam._n 3_o 14_o which_o bring_v home_o again_o his_o wife_n michol_n although_o she_o have_v be_v bestow_v by_o the_o father_n to_o a_o other_o man_n justinian_n justinian_n justinian_n also_o in_o his_o authentiks_n when_o he_o command_v a_o adulteress_n to_o be_v beat_v and_o close_v up_o in_o a_o monastery_n yet_o do_v he_o give_v leave_v unto_o the_o husband_n to_o take_v she_o unto_o he_o again_o if_o he_o will_v within_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n and_o so_o do_v most_o manifest_o allow_v of_o reconciliation_n augustine_n in_o his_o second_o book_n unto_o pollentius_fw-la augustine_n augustine_n labour_v very_o much_o in_o this_o to_o have_v they_o reconcile_v for_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v many_o which_o will_v not_o take_v their_o adulterous_a wife_n as_o they_o which_o be_v now_o spot_v and_o pollute_v whereupon_o he_o write_v but_o do_v thou_o think_v she_o to_o be_v pollute_v who_o baptism_n and_o repentance_n have_v purge_v and_o who_o god_n have_v make_v clean_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v pollute_v unto_o thou_o and_o if_o that_o she_o be_v already_o reconcile_v by_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n and_o admit_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o what_o right_a may_v thou_o repel_v she_o from_o thou_o in_o the_o 32._o cause_n question_v 1._o these_o word_n also_o be_v write_v if_o she_o be_v fall_v thou_o may_v know_v that_o to_o fall_v be_v common_a among_o man_n and_o mercy_n ought_v to_o be_v show_v to_o she_o if_o she_o be_v rise_v again_o for_o the_o same_o will_v we_o have_v do_v unto_o us._n and_o extreme_a law_n be_v extreme_a injury_n in_o the_o decretal_n de_fw-fr adulterijs_fw-la &_o stupris_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi vir_fw-la sciens_fw-la we_o read_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n a_o adulteress_n if_o she_o be_v penitent_a aught_o to_o be_v receive_v the_o gloss_n in_o that_o place_n ask_v by_o what_o law_n or_o right_n she_o shall_v be_v receive_v it_o answer_v not_o of_o necessity_n because_o the_o man_n can_v be_v compel_v whether_o he_o will_v or_o not_o to_o take_v she_o wherefore_o he_o ought_v by_o the_o law_n of_o honesty_n to_o bring_v she_o home_o again_o but_o i_o will_v ask_v the_o question_n ought_v he_o not_o to_o take_v she_o home_o by_o the_o duty_n of_o godliness_n and_o precept_n of_o god_n when_o as_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o philippian_n do_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a &_o just_a 8._o phil._n 4_o 8._o and_o so_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o commandment_n take_v place_n therein_o howbeit_o the_o gloss_n mean_v there_o of_o the_o outward_a law_n of_o plead_v whereby_o no_o man_n may_v be_v constrain_v to_o take_v a_o adulteress_n again_o but_o in_o the_o canon_n now_o cite_v be_v add_v not_o often_o for_o if_o she_o fall_v often_o into_o adultery_n she_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v the_o gloss_n there_o object_v christ_n against_o himself_o who_o be_v demand_v how_o oft_o a_o man_n shall_v forgive_v his_o brother_n when_o he_o sin_v against_o he_o answer_v not_o seven_o time_n only_o 22._o matt._n 18_o 22._o but_o seventie_o time_n seven_o time_n unto_o this_o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n must_v be_v understand_v that_o when_o the_o adulteress_n do_v so_o often_o stray_v the_o church_n shall_v make_v no_o intercession_n for_o reconciliation_n partly_o because_o there_o will_v be_v a_o window_n open_v unto_o wickedness_n and_o partly_o for_o that_o it_o be_v think_v to_o be_v but_o a_o feign_a and_o counterfeit_a kind_n of_o repentance_n also_o there_o be_v add_v another_o answer_n namely_o that_o it_o be_v speak_v for_o terror_n sake_n that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o sin_v too_o bold_o and_o licentiouslie_o hereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o repentance_n to_o the_o intent_n there_o may_v be_v a_o reconciliation_n wherefore_o the_o adulteress_n either_o show_v token_n of_o repentance_n or_o else_o show_v none_o if_o she_o show_v any_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o she_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o reconciliation_n but_o if_o she_o show_v none_o intercession_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v otherwise_o it_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o supporter_n of_o sin_n part_n a_o answer_n to_o the_o reason_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n 41_o now_o must_v we_o make_v answer_n unto_o the_o argument_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o let_v unto_o reconciliation_n as_o concern_v the_o civil_a law_n they_o must_v be_v amend_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n jerom_n and_o chrysostome_n speak_v of_o the_o adulteress_n which_o will_v not_o repent_v and_o this_o be_v plain_o perceive_v by_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n for_o so_o it_o be_v there_o arles_n the_o council_n of_o arles_n a_o man_n which_o retain_v a_o adulteress_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o crime_n yet_o nevertheless_o if_o she_o repent_v let_v she_o be_v receive_v but_o why_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n will_v not_o suffer_v 4._o deut._n 24_o 4._o that_o a_o wife_n be_v once_o put_v away_o shall_v return_v to_o her_o first_o husband_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o second_o the_o cause_n may_v easy_o be_v show_v for_o if_o he_o have_v permit_v this_o divorsement_n will_v soon_o have_v be_v admit_v in_o hope_n that_o the_o wife_n shall_v at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o recover_v her_o husband_n again_o god_n will_v that_o she_o which_o be_v once_o put_v away_o may_v not_o return_v any_o more_o lest_o she_o shall_v be_v put_v away_o upon_o small_a occasion_n there_o may_v also_o have_v be_v lie_v in_o wait_n for_o the_o latter_a husband_n that_o the_o wife_n when_o the_o latter_a be_v take_v away_o may_v return_v again_o to_o the_o first_o wherefore_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v most_o equal_a which_o pertain_v not_o unto_o adulteress_n who_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n it_o behoove_v to_o stone_n unto_o death_n by_o these_o thing_n now_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o husband_n to_o return_v again_o into_o favour_n with_o his_o wife_n that_o have_v be_v a_o adulteress_n so_o that_o she_o be_v penitent_a who_o nevertheless_o ought_v to_o accuse_v his_o wife_n of_o adultery_n if_o the_o crime_n be_v open_o know_v or_o if_o she_o do_v persevere_v in_o wickedness_n or_o else_o if_o the_o issue_n be_v bear_v by_o adultery_n lest_o the_o lawful_a heir_n shall_v be_v defraud_v for_o unless_o that_o accusation_n shall_v be_v a_o remedy_n a_o man_n may_v not_o disherit_v his_o child_n bear_v in_o adultery_n further_o the_o church_n may_v make_v intercession_n and_o deal_v with_o the_o husband_n for_o to_o bring_v home_o his_o penitent_a wife_n again_o so_o as_o our_o levit_fw-la must_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o receive_v of_o his_o adulterous_a wife_n into_o favour_n if_o so_o be_v that_o she_o do_v repent_v she_o of_o her_o adultery_n of_o wine_n and_o droonkennesse_n 42_o now_o
up_o by_o the_o wanton_a enticement_n of_o dance_v undoubted_o if_o a_o man_n will_v examine_v his_o own_o self_n or_o have_v a_o eye_n either_o unto_o experience_n or_o reason_n he_o shall_v perceive_v that_o in_o such_o spectacle_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v great_o kindle_v and_o inflame_v and_o he_o shall_v note_v that_o man_n return_v home_o from_o those_o danse_v with_o less_o virtue_n and_o the_o woman_n with_o less_o chastity_n further_o danger_n must_v rather_o be_v avoid_v than_o nourish_v for_o as_o solomon_n say_v 27._o eccle._n 3_o 27._o he_o which_o love_v danger_n shall_v fall_v therein_o 54_o but_o some_o will_v object_v that_o whereas_o danse_v be_v so_o against_o manner_n and_o do_v kindle_v lust_n that_o come_v rash_o and_o by_o chance_n but_o every_o thing_n must_v be_v judge_v not_o according_a to_o those_o thing_n which_o happen_v by_o chance_n but_o according_a to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o they_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n there_o be_v some_o so_o chaste_a and_o uncorrupt_a that_o they_o can_v behold_v these_o spectacle_n with_o a_o perfect_a and_o chaste_a mind_n i_o grant_v that_o this_o may_v sometime_o happen_v accident_n a_o difference_n of_o accident_n but_o i_o add_v that_o all_o accident_n be_v not_o of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o kind_n for_o there_o be_v some_o which_o happen_v very_o seldom_o other_o some_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v which_o by_o their_o nature_n may_v as_o well_o be_v present_a with_o as_o absent_v from_o any_o thing_n and_o there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v wont_v to_o happen_v oftentimes_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n these_o last_o accident_n ought_v in_o every_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v and_o most_o diligent_o weigh_v neither_o must_v we_o note_v what_o may_v be_v do_v but_o what_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v do_v aristippus_n aristippus_n aristippus_n danse_v in_o purple_a and_o be_v reproove_v he_o make_v a_o excuse_n that_o he_o be_v make_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o worse_a for_o that_o dance_n but_o may_v in_o that_o delicacy_n keep_v still_o his_o philosopher_n mind_n howbeit_o there_o must_v be_v no_o ear_n give_v to_o such_o word_n demosthenes_n demosthenes_n for_o as_o demosthenes_n say_v and_o the_o same_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o lawyer_n we_o must_v not_o regard_v what_o some_o one_o man_n do_v at_o one_o time_n but_o what_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n admit_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o one_o man_n so_o chaste_a as_o he_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o move_v with_o such_o enticement_n how_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v the_o people_n and_o multitude_n provide_v for_o shall_v we_o for_o the_o perfectness_n and_o integrity_n of_o one_o or_o two_o suffer_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v in_o danger_n but_o so_o a_o man_n will_v say_v take_v away_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o many_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o holy_a mystery_n to_o their_o own_o condemnation_n distinction_n a_o certain_a profitable_a distinction_n here_o must_v we_o understand_v that_o certain_a thing_n be_v profitable_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n and_o be_v command_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o these_o aught_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v take_v away_o and_o certain_a thing_n be_v indifferent_a which_o if_o we_o perceive_v that_o they_o tend_v to_o destruction_n they_o must_v not_o be_v suffer_v we_o have_v the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o hear_v of_o sermon_n and_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o for_o dance_v there_o be_v no_o commandment_n give_v wherefore_o these_o thing_n must_v not_o be_v compare_v together_o but_o by_o mean_n of_o dansing_n and_o leaping_n some_o say_v that_o very_o many_o honest_a matrimony_n be_v bring_v to_o pass_v it_o may_v sometime_o be_v so_o but_o i_o be_v never_o of_o the_o opinion_n that_o i_o will_v have_v matrimony_n to_o be_v contract_v by_o these_o art_n wherein_o a_o regard_n be_v only_o have_v to_o the_o agility_n and_o handsomeness_n of_o the_o body_n there_o be_v other_o mean_n much_o more_o honest_a let_v we_o use_v they_o and_o leave_v these_o as_o be_v shameful_a and_o unchaste_a let_v we_o remember_v that_o although_o honest_a matrimony_n be_v sometime_o bring_v to_o pass_v by_o dansing_n yet_o much_o more_o often_o be_v adultery_n and_o fornication_n wont_v to_o follow_v of_o these_o spectacle_n dansing_n honest_a dansing_n we_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o godly_a father_n who_o now_o and_o then_o use_v dansing_n but_o yet_o such_o as_o be_v moderate_a and_o chaste_a so_o that_o the_o man_n danse_v by_o themselves_o and_o the_o woman_n apart_o by_o themselves_o by_o such_o kind_n of_o danse_v they_o show_v forth_o the_o gladness_n of_o their_o mind_n they_o sing_v praise_n unto_o god_n and_o give_v he_o thanks_o for_o some_o notable_a benefit_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v but_o we_o read_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o mingle_a danse_v of_o man_n and_o woman_n together_o but_o our_o man_n say_v who_o can_v danse_v after_o that_o sort_n in_o say_v so_o they_o discover_v themselves_o what_o they_o seek_v for_o in_o dance_v further_o let_v we_o mark_v the_o effect_n of_o dance_v it_o be_v write_v in_o matthew_n 6._o matt._n 14_o 6._o that_o the_o daughter_n of_o herodias_n danse_v at_o a_o banquet_n which_o the_o king_n make_v and_o the_o king_n take_v a_o pleasure_n in_o she_o who_o without_o shame_n he_o can_v not_o open_o behold_v since_o she_o be_v a_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o his_o unlawful_a matrimony_n and_o of_o his_o adultery_n dansing_n the_o effect_n of_o lascivious_a dansing_n for_o herod_n have_v marry_v the_o mother_n of_o that_o maiden_n be_v his_o brother_n wife_n through_o that_o dance_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o johns_n head_n be_v smite_v off_o many_o be_v offend_v with_o we_o because_o we_o cry_v against_o dansing_n as_o against_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o their_o own_o nature_n evil_a and_o forbid_a on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o say_v that_o thing_n be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v weigh_v by_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o disposition_n and_o abuse_n of_o our_o flesh_n we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o wine_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o give_v to_o one_o that_o be_v in_o a_o ague_n not_o that_o the_o wine_n be_v evil_a but_o because_o it_o agree_v not_o with_o a_o body_n which_o be_v in_o that_o wise_a affect_v when_o the_o jew_n have_v make_v themselves_o a_o calf_n to_o worship_n they_o sit_v down_o they_o do_v eat_v they_o drink_v 6._o exod._n 36_o 6._o and_o rise_v up_o to_o play_v in_o which_o place_n it_o seem_v that_o to_o play_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o danse_v 55_o but_o lest_o i_o shall_v seem_v to_o speak_v and_o to_o judge_v these_o thing_n of_o myself_o i_o will_v add_v certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n against_o petilianus_n the_o sixth_o chapter_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v wont_v always_o to_o restrain_v idle_a and_o wanton_a dansing_n but_o now_o a_o day_n there_o be_v some_o bishop_n which_o be_v present_a at_o danse_v and_o danse_v together_o with_o woman_n so_o far_o off_o be_v they_o from_o restrein_v this_o vice_n the_o same_o augustine_n upon_o the_o 32._o psalm_n when_o he_o expound_v these_o word_n upon_o a_o instrument_n of_o ten_o string_n i_o will_v sing_v unto_o thou_o make_v those_o ten_o string_n the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v somewhat_o of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o at_o the_o last_o he_o come_v to_o the_o sabbath_n whereof_o it_o be_v write_v 10._o exo._n 20_o 10._o remember_v that_o thou_o keep_v holy_a the_o sabbath_n day_n i_o say_v not_o say_v he_o to_o live_v delicate_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_v to_o do_v for_o it_o be_v better_a to_o dig_v all_o the_o whole_a day_n than_o to_o danse_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n chrysostome_n chrysost_n chrysost_n in_o his_o 56._o homily_n upon_o genesis_n when_o he_o intreat_v of_o the_o marriage_n of_o jacob_n you_o have_v hear_v say_v he_o of_o marriage_n but_o not_o of_o dance_v which_o in_o that_o place_n he_o call_v devilish_a and_o even_o there_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n which_o make_v for_o our_o purpose_n and_o among_o other_o he_o write_v that_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o bride_n be_v corrupt_v by_o dance_v and_o the_o whole_a family_n be_v defile_v again_o in_o the_o 48._o homily_n thou_o see_v say_v he_o marriage_n but_o thou_o see_v not_o danse_v for_o at_o that_o time_n they_o be_v not_o so_o lascivious_a as_o now_o a_o day_n they_o be_v and_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n more_o upon_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n 6._o matt._n 14_o 6._o where_o he_o speak_v
say_v blessed_n be_v the_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o 28_o luke_n 11_o 27_o and_o 28_o and_o the_o pap_n that_o give_v thou_o suck_v christ_n answer_v yea_o rather_o happy_a be_v they_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o keep_v the_o same_o but_o christ_n by_o this_o answer_n reject_v not_o the_o friendship_n of_o his_o mother_n but_o he_o show_v which_o be_v to_o be_v count_v the_o better_a degree_n of_o felicity_n beside_o this_o they_o allege_v reason_n the_o 10._o reason_n that_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n can_v take_v humane_a flesh_n upon_o they_o and_o endue_v themselves_o with_o our_o body_n who_o for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o woman_n and_o what_o shall_v let_v say_v they_o but_o that_o we_o may_v say_v the_o very_a same_o of_o christ_n that_o he_o put_v on_o the_o form_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o take_v not_o the_o same_o of_o marie_n we_o answer_v that_o according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n for_o christ_n to_o be_v clad_v with_o a_o humane_a body_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n than_o by_o the_o virgin_n womb_n but_o the_o similitude_n of_o angel_n appéer_v in_o humane_a form_n must_v not_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o take_v no_o body_n upon_o they_o to_o be_v crucify_v to_o die_v and_o to_o redeem_v mankind_n but_o to_o execute_v the_o message_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o but_o christ_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v redeem_v man_n will_v be_v in_o very_a deed_n a_o man_n which_o have_v not_o happen_v if_o his_o body_n have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o heaven_n see_v that_o celestial_a and_o terrestrial_a nature_n do_v differ_v more_o than_o in_o kind_n also_o they_o think_v hilarius_n hilarius_n that_o hilarius_n be_v on_o their_o side_n who_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la write_v that_o marie_n the_o virgin_n add_v nothing_o of_o she_o unto_o the_o flesh_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n beside_o the_o ministry_n of_o conceive_v bear_v and_o bring_v forth_o when_o as_o this_o sentence_n nevertheless_o do_v vantage_n they_o but_o little_a for_o hilarius_n most_o manifest_o bear_v witness_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o creature_n but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n add_v nothing_o of_o she_o as_o touch_v those_o three_o ministery_n which_o he_o mention_v of_o conceive_v bear_v &_o bring_v forth_o for_o the_o 4._o ministry_n have_v be_v to_o have_v have_v the_o company_n of_o man_n to_o have_v join_v with_o he_o and_o to_o have_v admit_v his_o seed_n which_o marie_n do_v not_o of_o her_o own_o 1._o look_v par_fw-fr 1_o place_n 12_o art_n 15._o many_o proof_n that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a humane_a body_n the_o first_o reason_n luke_n 3_o 28_o matth._n 1_o 1._o 9_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o he_o have_v a_o true_a humane_a body_n it_o be_v prove_v many_o way_n for_o by_o the_o evangelist_n his_o genealogy_n be_v set_v forth_o the_o which_o by_o luke_n be_v finish_v in_o adam_n in_o matthew_n it_o be_v begin_v at_o abraham_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o hindrance_n that_o he_o name_v joseph_n as_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n because_o joseph_n and_o marie_n be_v both_o of_o one_o kindred_n wherefore_o both_o their_o petigrée_n be_v join_v together_o which_o whether_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o great_a grandfather_n grandfather_n or_o afterward_o it_o be_v no_o need_n at_o this_o present_a to_o inquire_v further_o reason_n the_o second_o reason_n matth._n 8_o 20_o 9_o 6_o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n gen._n 3_o 15._o the_o three_o reason_n the_o four_o reason_n gen._n 22_o 18_o the_o five_o reason_n rom._n 1_o 3._o the_o sixth_o reason_n rom._n 9_o 5._o the_o seven_o reason_n gal._n 4_o 4._o gal._n 3_o 16._o the_o eight_o reason_n the_o nine_o reason_n christ_n everywhere_a pronounce_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o unto_o eve_n be_v promise_v the_o seed_n that_o shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o unto_o abraham_n be_v promise_v a_o seed_n wherein_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v bless_v and_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o rom._n write_v of_o christ_n who_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o again_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n of_o who_o be_v the_o father_n &_o of_o who_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o bless_v for_o ever_o moreover_o unto_o the_o galathian_o we_o read_v when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v god_n send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n and_o also_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n be_v treat_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n by_o which_o the_o blessing_n shall_v afterward_o come_v and_o the_o apostle_n urge_v the_o word_n seed_n that_o it_o be_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n seed_n as_o though_o we_o shall_v understand_v the_o same_o of_o many_o but_o the_o scripture_n use_v the_o singular_a number_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v respect_n unto_o one_o man_n christ_n 8._o the_o ten_o reason_n 2._o tim._n 2_o 8._o unto_o timothy_n it_o be_v write_v remember_v thou_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o most_o evident_o of_o all_o do_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n prove_v this_o doctrine_n reason_n heb._n 2_o 16._o the_o 11._o reason_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n not_o of_o angel_n and_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n &_o be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o see_v his_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o also_o himself_o take_v part_n with_o they_o i_o mean_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n 11._o heb._n 5_o 2._o the_o 12._o reason_n heb._n 2_o 11._o and_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v our_o high_a priest_n which_o can_v suffer_v infirmity_n with_o we_o and_o be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n and_o again_o he_o that_o do_v sanctify_v and_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v be_v all_o of_o one_o and_o we_o be_v call_v his_o very_a brethren_n tertullian_n the_o 14._o reason_n tertullian_n 10_o tertullian_n bring_v another_o argument_n wherein_o he_o proove_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o very_a humane_a body_n nothing_o say_v he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o any_o matter_n but_o it_o retain_v some_o token_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o same_o because_o the_o body_n of_o the_o first_o man_n be_v wrought_v out_o of_o clay_n therefore_o it_o retain_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o two_o element_n for_o flesh_n represent_v the_o earth_n and_o blood_n the_o water_n token_n the_o body_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v earthy_a by_o many_o token_n and_o many_o thing_n declare_v we_o to_o be_v earthy_a in_o respect_n of_o our_o body_n in_o the_o earth_n thou_o may_v see_v clod_n in_o our_o body_n muscle_n the_o earth_n have_v stone_n our_o body_n have_v bone_n in_o the_o earth_n there_o be_v see_v river_n and_o flood_n over_o all_o our_o body_n vein_n be_v derive_v which_o water_n all_o the_o member_n with_o blood_n in_o the_o earth_n be_v spread_v the_o root_n of_o plant_n and_o tree_n in_o the_o body_n be_v place_v sinew_n in_o all_o the_o part_n in_o the_o earth_n be_v find_v pebble_n stone_n neither_o be_v our_o body_n destitute_a of_o gravell-stone_n nail_n and_o such_o other_o like_a the_o earth_n within_o her_o bowel_n and_o secret_a place_n have_v metal_n our_o body_n do_v hold_v marrow_n in_o the_o hollowness_n of_o the_o bone_n we_o see_v moss_n and_o herb_n to_o spring_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n also_o upon_o our_o body_n there_o do_v grow_v hair_n beard_n and_o bush_n of_o hair_n all_o which_o thing_n see_v they_o take_v place_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o adversary_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v christ_n of_o heavenly_a nature_n see_v these_o be_v token_n of_o earthy_a matter_n their_o opinion_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v probable_a if_o they_o can_v show_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n any_o token_n of_o the_o seven_o star_n of_o orion_n lucifer_n or_o arcturus_n for_o then_o after_o a_o sort_n they_o may_v prove_v the_o matter_n thereof_o to_o be_v bring_v from_o heaven_n ¶_o of_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n into_o one_o person_n of_o christ_n look_v the_o dialog_n of_o p._n martyr_n special_o set_v forth_o touch_v that_o matter_n 11_o jesus_n in_o latin_a seruator_fw-la a_o saviour_n anoint_v a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n jesus_n and_o christ_n in_o 1._o cor._n 1_o verse_n 3._o matt._n 1_o 21._o why_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n
and_o therefore_o very_a many_o of_o they_o in_o those_o day_n be_v marry_v but_o now_o that_o the_o church_n be_v increase_v we_o be_v not_o urge_v with_o that_o necessity_n wherefore_o it_o be_v justly_o decree_v that_o only_o unmarried_a man_n shall_v be_v choose_v now_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v more_o plenty_n of_o minister_n than_o be_v now_o 5_o but_o i_o beseech_v you_o let_v these_o man_n consider_v with_o themselves_o that_o in_o the_o same_o first_o time_n when_o the_o ferventness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o much_o flourish_v there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o more_o meet_a for_o the_o ministry_n than_o now_o there_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o exceed_a plenty_n of_o grace_n and_o spiritual_a gift_n beside_o this_o the_o church_n be_v enlarge_v and_o spread_v abroad_o it_o need_v many_o more_o minister_n than_o it_o do_v at_o that_o time_n furthermore_o there_o be_v a_o great_a necessity_n that_o constrein_v we_o namely_o because_o man_n at_o this_o day_n be_v more_o weak_a than_o they_o be_v at_o that_o time_n which_o also_o their_o pope_n deny_v not_o for_o in_o the_o distinction_n 34._o chapter_n fraternitatis_fw-la pelagius_n judge_v that_o a_o deacon_n who_o be_v in_o way_n of_o preferment_n have_v commit_v fornication_n and_o yet_o have_v a_o wife_n of_o his_o own_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o gentle_o entreat_v because_o in_o these_o day_n not_o only_a body_n be_v become_v feeble_a but_o honesty_n and_o manner_n also_o if_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o weakness_n of_o our_o time_n which_o be_v far_o great_a than_o in_o old_a time_n it_o be_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v from_o thence_o the_o remedy_n where_o they_o perceive_v a_o great_a necessity_n neither_o be_v it_o meet_v that_o they_o shall_v dissemble_v the_o necessity_n of_o this_o age_n when_o as_o they_o object_v unto_o we_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o old_a church_n dare_v allege_v against_o we_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n in_o each_o part_n and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o the_o one_o there_o must_v be_v also_o a_o consideration_n have_v of_o the_o other_o there_o be_v some_o among_o they_o which_o say_v that_o minister_n in_o the_o old_a time_n have_v wife_n and_o sometime_o use_v they_o but_o they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a at_o any_o time_n to_o marry_v wife_n after_o they_o have_v take_v order_n they_o err_v undoubted_o for_o in_o the_o ancyran_n synod_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o decree_n synod_n the_o ancyran_n synod_n the_o 28._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n diaconi_fw-la it_o be_v decree_v that_o if_o a_o deacon_n while_o he_o be_v order_v shall_v refuse_v the_o purpose_n of_o continency_n when_o the_o same_o be_v require_v of_o he_o and_o shall_v testify_v that_o he_o will_v not_o live_v without_o a_o wife_n order_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o minister_n to_o marry_v after_o he_o have_v receive_v order_n if_o the_o same_o deacon_n after_o he_o have_v take_v order_n do_v contract_n matrimony_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v hinder_v but_o may_v free_o execute_v his_o ministry_n by_o which_o place_n we_o be_v manifest_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o contract_v matrimony_n after_o order_n receive_v which_o gratianus_n see_v well_o enough_o and_o therefore_o he_o write_v gratian._n gratian._n that_o as_o touch_v that_o synod_n there_o ought_v a_o due_a consideration_n to_o be_v have_v both_o to_o the_o time_n and_o place_n for_o it_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o east_n church_n which_o in_o promote_a of_o minister_n admit_v not_o the_o promise_n of_o continency_n but_o as_o touch_v time_n he_o add_v that_o as_o yet_o this_o continency_n of_o minister_n be_v not_o then_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v ask_v when_o that_o council_n be_v hold_v we_o answer_v that_o as_o it_o also_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o decree_n it_o be_v hold_v under_o syricius_n and_o innocentius_n which_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o jerom_n and_o augustine_n 6_o but_o it_o be_v a_o jolly_a thing_n to_o see_v how_o tyranny_n have_v increase_v neocaesaria_n how_o punishment_n daily_o grow_v upon_o the_o clergy_n man_n which_o contract_a matrimony_n the_o council_n of_o neocaesaria_n and_o how_o ungodliness_n by_o little_a and_o little_o have_v take_v root_n at_o the_o beginning_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o contract_a matrimony_n be_v not_o altogether_o handle_v so_o severelie_o for_o the_o council_n of_o neocaesaria_n as_o it_o be_v recite_v in_o the_o 28._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n presbyter_n only_o command_v such_o to_o be_v deprive_v from_o their_o office_n but_o not_o from_o their_o benefice_n for_o they_o be_v still_o maintain_v and_o do_v receive_v their_o stipend_n from_o the_o church_n neither_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n will_v i_o pass_v over_o that_o that_o council_n do_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n such_o priest_n as_o be_v adulterer_n and_o whoremoonger_n namely_o in_o excommunicate_v they_o which_o be_v a_o very_a meet_a and_o just_a thing_n where_o as_o our_o man_n now_o a_o day_n do_v excéedinglie_o wink_v at_o those_o sin_n after_o this_o they_o begin_v not_o only_o to_o put_v they_o out_o of_o their_o office_n but_o also_o as_o they_o term_v it_o to_o remove_v they_o from_o their_o benefice_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 33._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n eos_n and_o in_o the_o chapter_n decreveru●t_o yea_o and_o those_o which_o so_o marry_v they_o send_v they_o away_o either_o into_o a_o monastery_n or_o else_o into_o some_o strait_a place_n to_o do_v penance_n but_o in_o our_o time_n they_o do_v burn_v many_o of_o they_o and_o afterward_o they_o be_v also_o in_o a_o great_a rage_n with_o the_o séelie_o woman_n who_o the_o minister_n have_v marry_v as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o 18._o distinction_n out_o of_o a_o certain_a council_n hold_v at_o toledo_n in_o the_o chapter_n quidam_fw-la where_o it_o be_v command_v toledo_n the_o cou●cell_n of_o toledo_n that_o the_o woman_n shall_v be_v sell_v and_o in_o the_o 34._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n eos_n they_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v servant_n in_o that_o church_n where_o the_o priest_n be_v which_o contract_v with_o they_o and_o if_o perhaps_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o bring_v they_o into_o bondage_n he_o shall_v commit_v it_o unto_o the_o prince_n or_o lay_v magistrate_n sometime_o also_o they_o put_v they_o into_o a_o monastery_n to_o do_v penance_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 34._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n fraternitatis_fw-la neither_o be_v they_o content_v with_o this_o cruelty_n but_o they_o will_v also_o have_v the_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v in_o such_o matrimony_n to_o be_v servant_n in_o that_o church_n wherein_o their_o father_n have_v be_v and_o they_o deprive_v they_o of_o all_o their_o father_n inheritance_n and_o this_o be_v write_v in_o the_o fiftéenth_fw-mi cause_n question_v the_o last_o in_o the_o chapter_n cùm_fw-la multae_fw-la they_o do_v not_o on_o this_o sort_n punish_v their_o adulterous_a sacrificer_n and_o fornicatour_n neither_o the_o harlot_n nor_o yet_o their_o bastard_n child_n they_o exercise_v their_o cruel_a censure_n upon_o the_o wife_n of_o priest_n and_o their_o lawful_a child_n only_o 7_o at_o the_o last_o when_o they_o have_v almost_o no_o other_o thing_n to_o allege_v they_o fly_v unto_o their_o vow_n as_o unto_o a_o holy_a anchor_n they_o cry_v out_o that_o the_o same_o must_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v keep_v and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o more_o lawful_a for_o minister_n to_o marry_v because_o when_o they_o be_v order_v they_o vow_v a_o sole_a life_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o both_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o by_o man_n law_n provide_v that_o a_o vow_n frustrate_a vow_n of_o unhonest_a thing_n be_v frustrate_a promise_n or_o oath_n have_v no_o force_n if_o it_o compel_v we_o to_o a_o unjust_a or_o unhonest_a thing_n and_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a shameful_a thing_n and_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o he_o which_o burn_v in_o lust_n and_o so_o burn_v that_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o defile_v with_o harlot_n adulterer_n and_o unlawful_a flesh_n shall_v be_v forbid_v to_o marry_v 9_o 1._o cor._n 7_o 9_o undoubted_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v command_v matrimony_n to_o all_o such_o as_o can_v keep_v themselves_o chaste_a yea_o and_o the_o father_n perceive_v this_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v more_o against_o we_o herein_o than_o equity_n will_v cyprian_a cyprian_a whereupon_o cyprian_n as_o touch_v holy_a virgin_n which_o have_v unchastlie_o behave_v themselves_o say_v if_o either_o they_o will_v not_o or_o can_v keep_v themselves_o chaste_a jerom._n jerom._n let_v they_o marry_v jerom_n also_o fear_v not_o to_o write_v the_o same_o unto_o demetrias_n epiphanius_n epiphanius_n epiphanius_n
call_v we_o unto_o grace_n without_o work_n he_o that_o can_v persuade_v himself_o hereof_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la say_v that_o god_n have_v swear_v and_o that_o we_o must_v give_v credit_n unto_o he_o for_o his_o oath_n sake_n who_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v though_o he_o have_v not_o swear_v for_o repentance_n come_v not_o in_o as_o a_o price_n wherewith_o we_o buy_v justification_n and_o as_o we_o have_v say_v when_o we_o speak_v of_o repentance_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o repentance_n which_o christ_n stir_v up_o in_o we_o whereby_o as_o joel_n say_v our_o heart_n be_v rend_v and_o not_o our_o garment_n which_o kind_n of_o repentance_n have_v the_o true_a sorrow_n join_v therewith_o some_o doubt_n whether_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n have_v repentance_n with_o they_o 4._o whether_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n have_v repentance_n apoc._n 21_o 4._o because_o in_o that_o place_n be_v neither_o tear_n nor_o yet_o sorrow_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n wipe_v away_o the_o tear_n from_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o choose_a entire_a repentance_n take_v no_o place_n in_o they_o indeed_o in_o will_v they_o detest_v sin_n but_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o life_n repentance_n be_v give_v together_o with_o sorrow_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o part_n 24_o they_o add_v confession_n to_o be_v a_o other_o part_n sin_n of_o confession_n a_o distinction_n of_o confession_n a_o confession_n of_o praise_n a_o civil_a confession_n of_o sin_n but_o the_o word_n have_v diverse_a signfication_n wherefore_o it_o must_v be_v divide_v into_o his_o proper_a signification_n to_o confess_v be_v to_o acknowledge_v and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n unto_o this_o confession_n the_o saint_n do_v exhort_v one_o a_o other_o an_o other_o confession_n there_o be_v of_o sin_n and_o the_o same_o also_o be_v of_o diverse_a sort_n one_o be_v civil_a whereby_o such_o as_o be_v guilty_a confess_v before_o judge_n those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v this_o confession_n be_v a_o work_n of_o justice_n josua_n say_v unto_o achan_n god_n josua_n 7_o 19_o a_o confession_n in_o mind_n before_o god_n give_v the_o glory_n unto_o god_n there_o be_v a_o other_o confession_n which_o be_v do_v in_o mind_n before_o god_n when_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o have_v sin_v and_o this_o be_v very_o necessary_a in_o the_o 32._o psalm_n david_n say_v my_o sin_n have_v i_o make_v know_v unto_o thou_o 5._o psal_n 32_o 5._o i_o will_v confess_v my_o unrighteousness_n that_o be_v against_o i_o in_o the_o 51._o psalm_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o 1._o psal_n 51_o 1._o o_o god_n according_a to_o thy_o great_a mercy_n in_o the_o nine_o of_o daniel_n we_o have_v sin_v 5._o dan._n 9_o 5._o we_o have_v do_v wicked_o in_o the_o first_o of_o john_n the_o first_o chapter_n if_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n ●_o 1._o john_n 1_o ●_o god_n be_v faithful_a to_o forgive_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o 16._o of_o leviticus_fw-la god_n will_v have_v this_o confession_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o priest_n 21_o levit._fw-la 16_o 21_o before_o the_o church_n in_o the_o feast_n of_o purification_n the_o priest_n lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o goat_n and_o confess_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n 6._o esd_v 9_o 6._o nehem._n 1_o 6._o esdras_n and_o nehemias_n make_v such_o confession_n for_o the_o people_n we_o say_v forgive_v we_o our_o debt_n we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v debtor_n before_o god_n 12._o matt._n 6_o 12._o this_o confession_n be_v comprehend_v in_o contrition_n for_o we_o can_v call_v upon_o god_n unless_o we_o acknowledge_v ourselves_o to_o be_v miserable_a there_o be_v another_o confession_n man_n a_o confession_n of_o sin_n before_o man_n which_o be_v do_v before_o man_n as_o when_o a_o man_n remember_v that_o he_o have_v hurt_v a_o other_o man_n he_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v offend_v and_o this_o he_o do_v to_o make_v he_o amends_n which_o thing_n our_o saviour_n commend_v to_o we_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n 23._o verse_n 23._o there_o be_v also_o a_o certain_a confession_n of_o a_o unlawful_a and_o public_a sin_n which_o offend_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o when_o man_n that_o be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n do_v open_o condemn_v the_o same_o heresy_n some_o confess_v their_o sin_n unto_o their_o friend_n and_o unto_o learned_a man_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v have_v counsel_n and_o consolation_n 25_o last_o there_o be_v a_o papistical_a confession_n confession_n a_o papistical_a confession_n for_o which_o they_o contend_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o reckon_v up_o all_o our_o sin_n unto_o the_o priest_n they_o affirm_v it_o to_o belong_v unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n god_n whether_o this_o confession_n be_v of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o canonist_n say_v that_o that_o law_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n other_o think_v to_o stint_v the_o strife_n by_o a_o reason_n between_o both_o namely_o that_o to_o confess_v sin_n unto_o the_o minister_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o that_o the_o manner_n and_o time_n be_v add_v thereunto_o by_o the_o bishop_n constitution_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o reason_n which_o lead_v they_o to_o affirm_v auricular_a confession_n to_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 4._o matt._n 8_o 4._o christ_n say_v they_o send_v the_o lepres_n unto_o the_o priest_n that_o they_o shall_v judge_v of_o the_o leprosy_n wherefore_o they_o which_o be_v defile_v with_o spiritual_a leprosy_n must_v go_v unto_o the_o priest_n we_o read_v of_o lazarus_n which_o be_v raise_v up_o from_o death_n 44._o john_n 11_o 44._o that_o he_o be_v bind_v with_o grave_a clothes_n christ_n command_v he_o to_o be_v loose_v so_o they_o which_o be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v loose_v 6_o matt._n 3_o 6_o they_o which_o come_v unto_o john_n baptist_n confess_v their_o sin_n 18._o verse_n 18._o in_o the_o 19_o of_o the_o act_n the_o ephesian_n which_o beléeve_v be_v many_o they_o not_o only_o repent_v but_o they_o also_o lay_v open_v their_o sin_n they_o bring_v forth_o their_o superstitious_a book_n 16._o verse_n 16._o in_o the_o five_o of_o james_n confess_v you_o your_o sin_n one_o to_o a_o other_o they_o say_v that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o the_o minister_n 18._o matt._n 18_o 18._o that_o whatsoever_o they_o lose_v shall_v be_v loose_v but_o how_o can_v they_o loose_v if_o they_o know_v not_o the_o fault_n 23._o verse_n 23._o in_o the_o 27._o chapter_n of_o the_o proverb_n it_o be_v command_v look_v upon_o the_o countenance_n of_o thy_o cattle_n but_o how_o shall_v the_o face_n of_o the_o cattle_n be_v know_v unto_o the_o pastor_n unless_o he_o examine_v all_o their_o do_n last_o it_o be_v no_o new_a devise_n in_o the_o church_n it_o have_v be_v in_o force_n of_o long_a time_n therefore_o it_o must_v not_o be_v think_v to_o be_v any_o devise_n of_o man_n these_o in_o a_o manner_n be_v their_o strong_a sort_n of_o reason_n howbeit_o they_o be_v very_o weak_a for_o they_o which_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o they_o do_v say_v and_o that_o true_o man_n that_o auricular_a confession_n be_v a_o invention_n of_o man_n that_o a_o man_n may_v find_v where_o auricular_a confession_n have_v his_o beginning_n which_o seem_v whole_o to_o be_v from_o man_n in_o the_o decree_n in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr remissione_n peccatorum_fw-la &_o poenitentia_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la sexus_fw-la there_o be_v a_o law_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o which_o ordain_v that_o as_o well_o man_n as_o woman_n if_o they_o come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n shall_v confess_v all_o their_o sin_n &_o that_o even_o once_o in_o the_o year_n and_o he_o add_v unto_o their_o own_o priest_n further_o let_v they_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o satisfaction_n but_o if_o so_o be_v they_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o let_v they_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o church_n and_o let_v burial_n be_v deny_v they_o further_o they_o show_v out_o of_o sozomenus_n in_o the_o sixth_o book_n 16._o chapter_n that_o there_o be_v a_o beginning_n of_o this_o confession_n by_o the_o constitution_n of_o bishop_n special_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n part_n and_o they_o add_v that_o it_o be_v take_v away_o by_o nectarius_n scripture_n that_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n hereof_o in_o the_o scripture_n these_o be_v token_n that_o they_o be_v devise_v by_o man_n they_o add_v further_o that_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n extant_a thereof_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v no_o judgement_n of_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o execute_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n their_o office_n they_o
manner_n what_o preeminence_n have_v henoch_n and_o elias_n above_o other_o man_n all_o the_o elect_a and_o faithful_a of_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o soul_n be_v translate_v from_o hence_o unto_o god_n and_o be_v not_o condemn_v with_o everlasting_a death_n indeed_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o sometime_o not_o to_o see_v death_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o soul_n even_o as_o the_o testimony_n which_o we_o have_v already_o bring_v do_v declare_v but_o sometime_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o simeon_n unto_o who_o it_o be_v reveal_v 26._o luke_n 2_o 26._o that_o he_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n till_o he_o have_v first_o see_v the_o lord_n christ_n yea_o and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o say_v 28._o matt._n 16_o 28._o there_o be_v of_o they_o which_o stand_v here_o present_a who_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o death_n until_o they_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o be_v note_n note_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o as_o other_o will_n until_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o transfiguration_n of_o christ_n upon_o mount_n thabor_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n be_v betokened_a in_o both_o these_o place_n further_o those_o word_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o hebrews_n allege_v a_o little_a above_o be_v so_o significant_a as_o they_o seem_v whole_o to_o testify_v that_o henoch_n be_v not_o dead_a but_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o other_o mind_n do_v urge_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n of_o the_o hebrews_n namely_o 27._o heb._n 9_o 27._o that_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v once_o die_v but_o we_o answer_v that_o these_o general_a proposition_n must_v not_o always_o be_v understand_v without_o any_o exception_n true_a indeed_o it_o be_v which_o be_v now_o affirm_v as_o touch_v the_o ordinary_a and_o common_a manner_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o pass_v thereby_o but_o that_o god_n by_o his_o special_a prerogative_n and_o certain_a peculiar_a will_n may_v exempt_v some_o from_o the_o law_n of_o death_n for_o what_o shall_v become_v either_o of_o we_o or_o of_o other_o which_o shall_v be_v find_v alive_a at_o the_o last_o day_n undoubted_o 15_o 1._o thes_n 4_o 15_o they_o shall_v be_v catch_v up_o to_o meet_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o air_n and_o paul_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n say_v 51_o 1._o co._n 15_o 51_o we_o shall_v not_o all_o die_v but_o we_o shall_v be_v all_o change_v beside_o this_o if_o the_o word_n of_o that_o say_n be_v urge_v with_o extremity_n how_o will_v it_o be_v true_a that_o man_n once_o die_v see_v lazarus_n the_o son_n of_o the_o widow_n 52_o john_n 11_o ●4_n luk._n 7_o 15._o matt._n 9_o 25._o matt._n 27_o 52_o and_o also_o the_o daughter_n of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagog_n who_o the_o lord_n raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a die_v not_o once_o but_o twice_o and_o it_o be_v think_v by_o augustine_n and_o diverse_a other_o that_o those_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o rise_v after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o appéer_v unto_o many_o in_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n when_o they_o have_v perform_v that_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o do_v settle_v in_o their_o grave_n as_o they_o do_v before_o 18_o they_o also_o say_v that_o it_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o roman_n 12._o rom._n 5_o 12._o that_o death_n by_o one_o man_n enter_v in_o upon_o all_o man_n and_o that_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 15._o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v 22._o verse_n 22._o as_o in_o adam_n all_o man_n be_v dead_a so_o in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a that_o it_o may_v be_v teach_v that_o the_o life_n lose_v in_o adam_n be_v recover_v again_o in_o christ_n unto_o these_o saieng_n we_o answer_v many_o way_n first_o even_o as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o these_o general_a proposition_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v without_o privilege_n and_o exception_n secondlie_o i_o will_v confess_v that_o henoch_n and_o elias_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v subject_a unto_o death_n and_o in_o that_o they_o be_v not_o dead_a but_o do_v enjoy_v eternal_a life_n that_o they_o obtain_v by_o christ_n howbeit_o a_o other_o answer_n there_o be_v much_o more_o perfect_a namely_o to_o say_v that_o the_o same_o change_n whereby_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o saint_n be_v glorify_v in_o take_v up_o be_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o death_n wherefore_o justinus_n martyr_n in_o his_o dialog_n with_o triphon_n say_v martyr_n justinus_n martyr_n that_o the_o world_n in_o the_o last_o time_n shall_v perish_v and_o not_o perish_v perish_v in_o what_o respect_n the_o world_n shall_v perish_v it_o shall_v not_o perish_v see_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v reduce_v to_o nothing_o but_o it_o shall_v perish_v because_o it_o shall_v be_v change_v to_o better_a for_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n shall_v both_o be_v pure_a and_o great_a than_o now_o it_o be_v for_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n for_o because_o all_o thing_n shall_v then_o be_v make_v new_a other_o say_v that_o the_o death_n of_o henoch_n and_o elias_n be_v not_o altogether_o take_v away_o but_o rather_o defer_v because_o they_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o last_o time_n &_o shall_v die_v in_o fight_v against_o antichrist_n of_o which_o opinion_n be_v tertullian_n tertullian_n tertullian_n who_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la page_n 682._o say_v elias_n and_o henoch_n be_v translate_v and_o their_o death_n be_v defer_v for_o they_o be_v reserve_v to_o die_v hereafter_o that_o with_o their_o blood_n they_o may_v extinguish_v antichrist_n again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n in_o the_o 672._o page_n elias_n shall_v come_v not_o from_o the_o departure_n of_o life_n but_o from_o the_o translation_n thereof_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o body_n from_o which_o he_o be_v not_o exempt_v but_o he_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o world_n the_o same_o father_n against_o the_o jew_n call_v henoch_n a_o inceptor_n candid●tus_fw-la candid●tus_fw-la or_o one_o ready_a apparel_v for_o eternity_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la 603._o he_o say_v that_o god_n translate_v henoch_n into_o the_o society_n of_o his_o own_o friendship_n and_o see_v a_o friend_n do_v benefit_v he_o who_o he_o love_v and_o wish_v well_o unto_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o god_n translate_v henoch_n for_o to_o kill_v he_o irenaeus_n irenaeus_n but_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o four_o book_n &_o thirty_o chapter_n be_v of_o the_o opinion_n that_o henoch_n have_v exercise_v a_o message_n against_o the_o angel_n who_o be_v think_v in_o old_a time_n to_o be_v fall_v through_o a_o naughty_a desire_n towards_o woman_n and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v even_o as_o yet_o preserve_v alive_a for_o a_o testimony_n of_o god_n judgement_n and_o these_o thing_n may_v suffice_v as_o touch_v the_o second_o point_n whereby_o be_v prove_v by_o probable_a reason_n that_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v dead_a up_o thy_o henoch_n and_o elias_n be_v catch_v up_o 19_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o seek_v to_o what_o end_n they_o be_v so_o take_v up_o some_o say_v that_o it_o be_v do_v to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v have_v before_o our_o eye_n a_o certain_a figure_n and_o show_v of_o our_o resurrection_n as_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o take_v up_o of_o these_o be_v a_o livelie_a example_n thereof_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o measure_v our_o felicity_n by_o or_o with_o the_o term_n of_o this_o life_n but_o in_o my_o judgement_n example_n ought_v to_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a for_o that_o otherwise_o they_o be_v but_o weak_a proof_n certeinlie_o in_o this_o place_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o resurrection_n either_o we_o or_o they_o the_o sign_n of_o jonas_n the_o prophet_n do_v manifest_o shadow_v the_o resurrection_n 40._o matt._n 12_o 40._o who_o be_v cast_v up_o alive_a out_o of_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o whale_n 11._o rom._n 8_o 11._o but_o paul_n to_o the_o roman_n do_v plain_o show_v the_o resurrection_n after_o another_o sort_n if_o you_o have_v say_v he_o his_o spirit_n which_o raise_v up_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o same_o shall_v quicken_v your_o mortal_a body_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v see_v the_o spirit_n be_v one_o it_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o same_o effect_n and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 15._o chapter_n he_o say_v etc._n vers_fw-la 12_o etc._n etc._n if_o christ_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o also_o shall_v rise_v again_o which_o he_o therefore_o speak_v because_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o christ_n
whatsoever_o else_o rather_o than_o that_o which_o behoove_v undoubted_o godly_a king_n erect_v school_n &_o college_n that_o in_o they_o young_a man_n shall_v be_v bring_v up_o to_o good_a learning_n and_o godliness_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cathedral_n church_n but_o a_o school_n be_v join_v thereunto_o at_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n do_v pantenus_n clemens_n origen_n and_o other_o most_o learned_a man_n public_o profess_v at_o this_o day_n also_o among_o the_o canoniste_n a_o place_n be_v assign_v for_o the_o schoolmaster_n but_o he_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o teach_v the_o youth_n and_o hereof_o come_v so_o great_a darkness_n every_o where_n in_o the_o pope_n government_n 5._o 1._o sam._n 10._o 5._o either_o because_o the_o youth_n be_v not_o teach_v at_o all_o or_o else_o because_o they_o be_v teach_v wicked_a thing_n samuel_n be_v precedent_n of_o this_o college_n before_o his_o time_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o any_o such_o fellowship_n of_o prophet_n of_o take_v a_o spiritual_a charge_n look_v the_o oration_n that_o begin_v those_o cause_n 4._o in_o jud._n 4._o v._n 4._o 10_o but_o when_o as_o god_n choose_v deborah_n unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o judge_v be_v weak_a in_o sex_n he_o straight_o way_n make_v she_o very_o famous_a and_o honourable_a through_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesy_v by_o which_o grace_n and_o perhaps_o many_o other_o miracle_n more_o she_o be_v constitute_v by_o god_n and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n as_o a_o woman_n choose_v to_o so_o great_a a_o office_n neither_o be_v only_o this_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n for_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o read_v of_o other_o woman_n also_o which_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n marry_o the_o sister_n of_o moses_n 36._o exod._n 15._o 20._o 1._o sam._n 2._o 1._o 2._o king_n 22._o 14._o luke_n 1._o v._o 42._o &_o 46._o &_o 2._o 36._o hanna_n the_o mother_n of_o samuel_n holda_n in_o the_o time_n of_o josias_n the_o king_n be_v prophetess_n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o marie_n the_o virgin_n of_o elizabeth_n the_o mother_n of_o john_n and_o of_o anna_n the_o daughter_n of_o phanuel_n the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n people_n that_o woman_n prophet_n do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v prophetess_n neither_o think_v i_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v deny_v that_o some_o of_o those_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n in_o declare_v of_o those_o thing_n unto_o they_o which_o have_v be_v show_v they_o of_o god_n see_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v not_o therefore_o give_v that_o they_o shall_v lie_v hide_v but_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v further_o the_o common_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o hereby_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o what_o god_n do_v by_o some_o peculiar_a privilege_n we_o shall_v forthwith_o draw_v it_o into_o a_o example_n unto_o we_o because_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v bind_v unto_o a_o ordinary_a law_n church_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 12._o 1._o cor._n 14._o 34._o why_o woman_n be_v command_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n whereby_o both_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o command_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o silence_n command_v he_o assign_v cause_n namely_o for_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o husband_n but_o the_o office_n of_o a_o teacher_n do_v declare_v a_o certain_a authority_n over_o those_o which_o be_v teach_v which_o must_v not_o be_v attribute_v unto_o a_o woman_n over_o man_n for_o she_o be_v make_v for_o man_n who_o to_o obey_v she_o ought_v always_o to_o have_v a_o respect_n which_o thing_n be_v also_o appoint_v she_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o woman_n after_o sin_n be_v commit_v 16._o gen._n 3._o 16._o thy_o disposition_n shall_v be_v towards_o thy_o husband_n further_o the_o apostle_n derive_v a_o reason_n from_o the_o first_o fault_n 14._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 14._o wherein_o he_o say_v that_o eve_n be_v seduce_v and_o not_o adam_n so_o as_o if_o woman_n shall_v ordinary_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o holy_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n man_n may_v easy_o suspect_v that_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o accustom_a instrument_n will_v deceive_v the_o people_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o will_v the_o less_o esteem_v the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v commit_v unto_o woman_n wherefore_o by_o the_o ordinary_a right_n and_o by_o the_o apostolical_a rule_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v appoint_v unto_o man_n howbeit_o if_o god_n do_v otherwise_o sometime_o yet_o can_v he_o not_o be_v just_o accuse_v for_o so_o much_o as_o all_o law_n be_v in_o his_o power_n if_o then_o sometime_o he_o send_v a_o prophetisse_n and_o adorn_v she_o with_o heavenly_a gift_n the_o same_o woman_n speak_v in_o the_o church_n must_v undoubted_o be_v hearken_v unto_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o her_o state_n be_v not_o forget_v therefore_o the_o two_o testimony_n of_o paul_n reconcile_v two_o place_n of_o paul_n be_v reconcile_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o may_v easy_o be_v reconcile_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n he_o write_v that_o a_o woman_n ought_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n which_o toward_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 5._o he_o most_o manifest_o confirm_v howbeit_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o command_v that_o a_o man_n prophesy_v or_o pray_v shall_v have_v his_o head_n uncover_v but_o the_o woman_n while_o the_o prophesi_v shall_v have_v it_o cover_v whereby_o doubtless_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n both_o to_o speak_v and_o also_o to_o prophesy_v in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o will_v not_o seem_v that_o so_o do_v she_o shall_v have_v be_v command_v to_o cover_v her_o head_n if_o she_o be_v utter_o to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n after_o this_o sort_n the_o matter_n must_v be_v expound_v namely_o that_o the_o precept_n of_o silence_n be_v a_o general_a precept_n head_n why_o the_o woman_n that_o prophesy_v be_v command_v to_o be_v cover_v on_o their_o head_n but_o the_o other_o which_o be_v for_o cover_v of_o the_o head_n when_o they_o pray_v or_o prophesy_v pertain_v only_o to_o those_o which_o be_v prophetess_n they_o very_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o prophesy_v for_o the_o common_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n but_o lest_o they_o forget_v the_o property_n of_o their_o own_o state_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a office_n commit_v unto_o they_o shall_v wax_v proud_a they_o be_v command_v to_o have_v their_o head_n cover_v whereby_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o they_o have_v yet_o the_o power_n of_o man_n above_o they_o moreover_o where_o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n to_o titus_n 3._o tit._n 2._o 3._o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o elder_a woman_n shall_v admonish_v the_o young_a woman_n of_o temperance_n &_o that_o they_o shall_v love_v their_o husband_n and_o child_n and_o shall_v likewise_o be_v diligent_a housewife_n in_o their_o family_n this_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v as_o touch_v public_a doctrine_n or_o ecclesiastical_a sermon_n but_o of_o private_a exhortation_n which_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o elder_a sort_n unto_o the_o young_a 12_o in_o rom._n 12_o 11_o when_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o roman_n he_o that_o distribute_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o sincerity_n deacon_n the_o office_n of_o deacon_n he_o touch_v the_o office_n of_o deacon_n as_o they_o be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o aught_o also_o to_o be_v in_o our_o time_n their_o office_n be_v to_o distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a the_o alm_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v they_o do_v their_o office_n say_v he_o with_o simplicity_n let_v they_o withhold_v nothing_o by_o craft_n and_o ill_a practice_n for_o naughty_a and_o deceitful_a man_n when_o they_o have_v deal_v in_o public_a receipt_n do_v nothing_o sincere_o but_o use_v wonder_a guile_n and_o subtlety_n these_o thing_n will_v paul_n have_v to_o be_v remove_v from_o this_o kind_n of_o ministry_n other_o think_v that_o in_o give_v with_o simplicity_n he_o mean_v without_o any_o respect_n unto_o worldly_a praise_n which_o some_o seek_v for_o in_o the_o bestow_n of_o other_o man_n alm_n but_o the_o first_o interpretation_n in_o my_o judgement_n seem_v most_o fit_a and_o whereas_o he_o add_v he_o that_o rule_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o carefulness_n although_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o
reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o the_o right_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v knit_v together_o of_o which_o thing_n they_o be_v call_v minister_n which_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n if_o that_o they_o be_v appoint_v as_o organ_n and_o instrument_n of_o our_o faith_n who_o will_v not_o have_v they_o in_o honour_n and_o estimation_n the_o anabaptiste_n reject_v and_o despise_v minister_n anabaptist_n the_o anabaptist_n therefore_o hitherto_o they_o have_v have_v no_o true_a church_n for_o it_o can_v continue_v neither_o can_v the_o divine_a worship_a be_v open_o retain_v if_o so_o be_v that_o consideration_n of_o minister_n be_v not_o have_v ambrose_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o attribute_v not_o too_o much_o unto_o minister_n jere_fw-la 17._o 5._o ambrose_n nevertheless_o take_v thou_o heed_n that_o neither_o thou_o attribute_v over_o much_o unto_o they_o nor_o yet_o put_v over_o much_o trust_n in_o they_o for_o it_o be_v write_v curse_v be_v he_o that_o trust_v in_o man_n and_o that_o make_v flesh_n his_o arm_n for_o as_o ambrose_n write_v they_o do_v notable_a contumely_n unto_o god_n which_o give_v unto_o they_o be_v but_o creature_n the_o honour_n due_a unto_o god_n which_o little_a differ_v from_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o gentile_n whereby_o they_o give_v divine_a honour_n unto_o thing_n create_v the_o very_a which_o thing_n must_v be_v take_v heed_n of_o saint_n we_o must_v take_v the_o same_o heed_n as_o touch_v the_o saint_n that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v towards_o the_o saint_n who_o we_o rob_v of_o their_o own_o good_a reputation_n while_o we_o adorn_v they_o with_o divine_a title_n for_o then_o when_o as_o we_o with_o our_o ornament_n and_o dignity_n can_v make_v they_o equal_a unto_o god_n we_o deprive_v they_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o we_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n which_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o their_o nature_n how_o shall_v we_o excuse_v they_o who_o common_o call_v the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o mother_n of_o mercy_n reproove_v certain_a title_n give_v to_o our_o lady_n reproove_v which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n who_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n 3._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 3._o and_o they_o name_v she_o to_o be_v their_o life_n whereas_o christ_n unto_o the_o colossian_n be_v call_v our_o life_n 3_o col._n 3._o 3_o and_o he_o himself_o say_v of_o himself_o 6._o john_n 14._o 6._o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n also_o in_o that_o song_n she_o be_v call_v our_o sweetness_n as_o though_o in_o she_o be_v lay_v up_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a howbeit_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o consolation_n and_o comfort_n 3._o 2._o cor._n 1._o 3._o final_o they_o call_v she_o their_o hope_n as_o if_o they_o will_v put_v hope_n in_o a_o creature_n show_v unto_o we_o say_v they_o jesus_n christ_n thy_o son_n but_o this_o pertain_v only_o unto_o the_o father_n according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v 44._o john_n 6._o 44._o none_o come_v unto_o i_o unless_o the_o father_n draw_v he_o much_o doubtless_o be_v attribute_v unto_o minister_n when_o they_o be_v account_v the_o minister_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n for_o even_o christ_n himself_o as_o touch_v man_n take_v upon_o he_o this_o name_n of_o a_o minister_n unto_o the_o roman_n we_o read_v 8._o rom._n 15._o 8._o i_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o circumcision_n also_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n hebrues_n rom._n 13._o 4._o magistrate_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n have_v their_o function_n join_v together_o he●_n 1._o 5._o 1._o the_o definition_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrues_n a_o magistrate_n be_v call_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o pass_v over_o that_o magistrate_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v define_v much_o in_o like_a sort_n i_o will_v to_o god_n their_o mind_n be_v aswell_o unite_v as_o their_o office_n and_o charge_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n concern_v one_o another_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n a_o high_a priest_n be_v define_v that_o he_o be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n and_o for_o man_n be_v appoint_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v define_v a_o magistrate_n thou_o shall_v perceive_v how_o near_o he_o come_v unto_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n he_o also_o be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n magistrate_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o magistrate_n and_o for_o man_n be_v ordain_v unto_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v unto_o civil_a good_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o may_v live_v under_o they_o a_o peaceable_a and_o quiet_a life_n unto_o godliness_n and_o temperance_n as_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n unto_o timothy_n 2_o 1._o tim._n 2._o 2_o then_o see_v the_o magistrate_n also_o be_v account_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n we_o owe_v great_a honour_n unto_o he_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o we_o attribute_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n unto_o he_o and_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v command_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v against_o god_n let_v he_o not_o be_v hearken_v unto_o 36_o but_o to_o return_n unto_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 3._o chapter_n asimilitude_n in_o 1._o cor._n 3._o 3._o 1._o cor._n 3._o 6._o asimilitude_n in_o the_o two_o word_n of_o plant_v and_o water_v he_o comprehend_v all_o the_o work_n of_o husband_n man_n god_n give_v the_o increase_n so_o as_o that_o which_o have_v be_v plant_v and_o water_v may_v live_v and_o that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o increase_v he_o mean_v life_n hereof_o i_o suppose_v it_o may_v be_v gather_v see_v plant_n have_v no_o life_n except_o that_o which_o they_o common_o call_v vegetative_a because_o they_o be_v move_v unto_o nourishment_n whereby_o come_v great_a increasing_n for_o although_o they_o seem_v to_o change_v place_n or_o to_o vary_v in_o quality_n all_o these_o thing_n happen_v unto_o they_o because_o they_o receive_v increase_v or_o nourishment_n the_o similitude_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v very_o well_o concur_v god_n the_o increase_n &_o success_n of_o the_o field_n must_v be_v expect_v from_o god_n because_o although_o the_o husbandman_n do_v diligent_o employ_v their_o labour_n yet_o the_o increase_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o heaven_n but_o and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o their_o mind_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o labour_n albeit_o we_o must_v ascribe_v the_o whole_a matter_n not_o unto_o heaven_n but_o rather_o unto_o god_n himself_o he_o it_o be_v that_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o rise_v both_o upon_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a 45._o matt._n 5._o 45._o and_o rain_v upon_o the_o just_a &_o unjust_a and_o that_o he_o do_v rule_n and_o moderate_v these_o thing_n after_o his_o own_o pleasure_n it_o appear_v out_o of_o leviticus_fw-la 19_o levi._n 26._o 19_o where_o he_o threaten_v the_o israelit_n when_o they_o grievous_o sin_v that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o a_o heaven_n of_o iron_n and_o a_o earth_n of_o brass_n in_o like_a manner_n we_o read_v in_o deuteronomie_n where_o he_o add_v also_o a_o promise_n 12_o deut_n 28._o 12_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v abide_v in_o his_o commandment_n he_o will_v open_v his_o treasure_n unto_o they_o give_v rain_n in_o due_a season_n wherefore_o that_o the_o metaphor_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v most_o profitable_a way_n the_o metaphor_n of_o put_v and_o water_n 〈◊〉_d profitable_a two_o manner_n of_o way_n thereby_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o that_o he_o not_o only_o teach_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n but_o also_o with_o fruit_n expound_v that_o nature_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v derive_v for_o it_o be_v no_o less_o profitable_a to_o know_v that_o the_o success_n of_o humane_a labour_n in_o all_o art_n and_o enterprise_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o increase_n of_o natural_a thing_n must_v be_v expect_v to_o come_v from_o god_n than_o so_o to_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v but_o so_o much_o as_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n shall_v further_o therefore_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o 16._o 14._o act._n 16._o 14._o chapter_n we_o read_v that_o the_o woman_n which_o sell_v purple_a hear_v the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n purple_a of_o the_o woman_n which_o sell_v purple_a who_o heart_n the_o lord_n open_v that_o she_o may_v understande_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o paul_n apollo_n corinth_n apollo_n succeed_v paul_n in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n of_o who_o there_o be_v mention_v there_o succéede_v paul_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n therefore_o he_o be_v say_v
overthrow_v heretic_n i_o on_o the_o other_o part_n say_v that_o unless_o we_o use_v figure_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v cite_v a_o little_a before_o the_o heretic_n have_v the_o over_o hand_n for_o they_o also_o will_v urge_v the_o proper_a sense_n that_o sense_n i_o mean_v which_o straightwaie_o offer_v itself_o only_o this_o remain_v to_o show_v that_o such_o a_o phrase_n and_o figurative_a speech_n be_v very_o often_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 11._o such_o figurative_a speech_n as_o this_o be_v most_o familiar_a in_o the_o scripture_n luke_n 8._o 11._o and_o this_o will_v easy_o be_v do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o seed_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n albeit_o i_o know_v some_o do_v cavil_n 4_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 4_o and_o will_v no_o figure_n to_o be_v here_o also_o because_o paul_n tend_v his_o speech_n unto_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o they_o say_v be_v christ_n very_o and_o not_o figurativelie_o howbeit_o augustine_n and_o origen_n be_v on_o our_o side_n who_o plain_o say_v that_o the_o same_o outward_a rock_n signify_v christ_n but_o lest_o we_o may_v seem_v to_o shift_v off_o that_o which_o be_v object_v we_o say_v that_o if_o they_o will_v understand_v the_o spiritual_a rock_n let_v they_o also_o in_o this_o place_n understand_v spiritual_a and_o allegorical_a bread_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o same_o we_o shall_v true_o and_o without_o figure_n confess_v it_o to_o be_v christ_n moreover_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o have_v choose_v you_o twelve_o and_o one_o of_o you_o be_v a_o devil_n 70._o john_n 6._o 70._o yet_o be_v not_o judas_n therefore_o transubstantiate_v into_o a_o devil_n of_o circumcision_n it_o be_v write_v my_o covenant_n shall_v be_v in_o your_o flesh_n 13._o joh._n 17._o 13._o whereas_o the_o circumcision_n be_v not_o the_o covenant_n but_o only_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n 20._o verse_n 20._o in_o the_o 33._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n it_o be_v show_v that_o jacob_n build_v a_o altar_n which_o he_o call_v the_o mighty_a god_n of_o israel_n 15._o exo._n 17._o 15._o and_o moses_n in_o exodus_fw-la after_o the_o victory_n against_o amaleck_n call_v the_o altar_n which_o he_o build_v jehovahnesi_n 6._o jer._n 23._o 6._o god_n my_o banner_n and_o jeremie_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o city_n that_o be_v call_v jehovah_n zidkenu_n god_n our_o righteousness_n because_o these_o shall_v be_v monument_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o express_v in_o name_n 35._o john_n 5._o 35._o of_o john_n baptist_n it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o be_v a_o burn_a and_o a_o shine_a candle_n also_o 12_o mat._n 17._o 12_o he_o be_v helias_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v he_o christ_n say_v of_o himself_o 1._o john_n 15._o 1._o i_o be_o the_o vine_n and_o you_o be_v the_o branch_n 6._o john_n 10._o 7._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 6._o i_o be_o the_o door_n of_o himself_o also_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o be_v a_o stone_n set_v for_o a_o ruin_n and_o resurrection_n 23._o deu._n 12._o 23._o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o blood_n be_v the_o life_n whereas_o it_o be_v that_o wherewith_o the_o life_n be_v preserve_v and_o signify_v 37_o gen._n 37._o 37_o of_o joseph_n his_o brother_n judas_n say_v let_v he_o not_o be_v slay_v he_o be_v our_o flesh_n by_o which_o phrase_n of_o speech_n be_v signify_v the_o natural_a conjunction_n of_o kindred_n 17_o 1._o co._n 10._o 17_o paul_n say_v that_o many_o be_v one_o bread_n which_o we_o must_v understand_v figurativelie_o and_o christ_n breathe_v upon_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_a 22._o joh._n 20._o 22._o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o breathe_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o genesis_n 3._o gen._n 6._o 3._o my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o abide_v in_o man_n because_o he_o be_v flesh_n and_o in_o john_n the_o word_n become_v flesh_n 14._o john_n 1._o 14._o wherein_o be_v the_o figure_n synecdoche_n for_o the_o whole_a man_n be_v understand_v under_o the_o name_n of_o flesh_n and_o the_o lord_n upon_o the_o cross_n say_v woman_n behold_v thy_o son_n 26._o joh._n 19_o 26._o and_o to_o the_o disciple_n behold_v thy_o mother_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o transubstantiate_v they_o remain_v the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v before_o but_o there_o be_v appoint_v a_o new_a order_n a_o new_a relation_n and_o respect_n to_o be_v have_v between_o they_o of_o christ_n it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v our_o peace_n 14._o ephe._n 2._o 14._o whereas_o he_o be_v only_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o peace_n again_o 62._o john_n 6._o 62._o my_o word_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n whereas_o they_o only_o signify_v or_o bring_v these_o thing_n unto_o the_o beléever_n 29._o john_n 1._o 29._o john_n say_v of_o christ_n behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v not_o his_o nature_n change_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o lamb_n 36_o we_o read_v every_o where_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 13_o psal_n 19_o 10._o psal_n 105._o 5._o &_o 118._o v._o 13_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v judgement_n truth_n &_o righteousness_n whereas_o these_o thing_n be_v therein_o only_o signify_v and_o express_v and_o this_o similitude_n do_v excellent_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v visible_a word_n we_o have_v in_o the_o apocalips_n i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n that_o be_v ●_o apoc._n 1_o ●_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o paul_n say_v of_o his_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n unto_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v 16_o rom._n 1._o 16_o whereas_o it_o be_v only_o the_o instrument_n whereby_o the_o power_n of_o god_n declare_v itself_o unto_o man_n that_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o as_o touch_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o say_v 21._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 21._o that_o unto_o the_o ungodly_a it_o be_v foolishness_n that_o be_v it_o signify_v a_o foolish_a thing_n unto_o that_o kind_n of_o man_n but_o he_o add_v 24._o ibid._n 24._o that_o unto_o the_o godly_a it_o be_v the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n because_o it_o represent_v these_o thing_n unto_o they_o and_o as_o touch_v the_o law_n it_o be_v say_v 15_o deu._n 30._o 15_o that_o he_o set_v before_o the_o hebrew_n life_n &_o death_n blessing_n and_o curse_v that_o be_v by_o signification_n of_o the_o law_n by_o the_o promise_n &_o threaten_n which_o be_v express_v in_o the_o same_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n the_o seven_o 26_o gen._n 41._o 26_o kine_n and_o the_o seven_o ear_n of_o corn_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o seven_o year_n 31._o 1._o king_n 11._o 31._o and_o this_o be_v as_o touch_v the_o signification_n ahia_n the_o prophet_n of_o silo_n give_v unto_o jeroboam_fw-la ten_o piece_n of_o his_o tear_a mantel_n &_o say_v that_o he_o give_v he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o x._o tribe_n 10._o ver._n 10._o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o xj_o chapter_n paul_n write_v that_o the_o woman_n ought_v to_o have_v on_o her_o head_n power_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o cover_n whereby_o the_o power_n of_o the_o husband_n be_v signify_v and_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n it_o be_v write_v 21_o 2._o cor._n 5._o 21_o that_o god_n make_v christ_n to_o be_v sin_n namely_o as_o touch_v the_o similitude_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o flesh_n 8._o levit._fw-la 7._o v._o 2._o 7._o &_o 37._o osee_n 4._o 8._o yea_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o sin_n be_v call_v sin_n and_o the_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o eat_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n in_o ezechiel_n it_o be_v write_v 25_o eze._n 36._o 25_o i_o will_v pour_v upon_o you_o pure_a water_n and_o by_o water_n he_o signify_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n we_o read_v of_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v 14._o john_n 4._o 14._o he_o that_o shall_v drink_v of_o this_o water_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v where_o the_o evangelist_n call_v to_o mind_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o be_v to_o receive_v 27._o exo._n 12._o 27._o of_o the_o lamb_n we_o read_v that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o passeover_n although_o some_o endeavour_n to_o deny_v it_o but_o in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v zebah_n pesah_o hu_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o passover_n by_o sacrifice_n can_v otherwise_o be_v understand_v but_o either_o the_o beast_n slay_v for_o sacrifice_n or_o else_o the_o same_o action_n of_o offer_v the_o slay_a beast_n even_o so_o we_o have_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n express_v both_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o in_o the_o wine_n and_o in_o the_o action_n aswell_o of_o eat_v as_o of_o
just_o shed_v howbeit_o these_o thing_n be_v mere_a trifle_n for_o that_o temple_n be_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n not_o by_o violence_n or_o by_o blood_n therefore_o god_n will_v have_v his_o temple_n to_o be_v build_v not_o by_o david_n but_o by_o solomon_n the_o peaceable_a king_n moreover_o solomon_n in_o himself_o do_v shadow_n christ_n 3._o psal_n 110._o 3._o but_o christ_n gather_v unto_o himself_o man_n that_o come_v not_o against_o their_o will_n but_o a_o willing_a people_n for_o that_o cause_n god_n make_v this_o answer_n unto_o david_n and_o whereas_o they_o say_v that_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o blood_n just_o shed_v by_o david_n it_o be_v false_a nay_o it_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o betray_n of_o urias_n and_o of_o those_o soldier_n which_o be_v slay_v together_o with_o he_o this_o fact_n although_o god_n have_v forgive_v david_n before_o yet_o will_v he_o appoint_v some_o discipline_n for_o it_o but_o let_v these_o man_n which_o be_v so_o sharp_a and_o witty_a tell_v i_o whether_o peter_n when_o he_o slay_v ananias_n and_o saphira_n 11._o acts._n 5._o 5._o acts._n 13._o 11._o or_o paul_n when_o he_o have_v blind_v elimas_n be_v make_v irregular_a or_o else_o if_o they_o be_v not_o from_o that_o time_n forforwarde_o exercise_v in_o the_o office_n of_o apostle_n camp_n that_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o camp_n 12_o but_o in_o a_o camp_n there_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v minister_n howbeit_o not_o to_o fight_v but_o to_o instruct_v the_o soldier_n and_o to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n if_o need_v require_v in_o deuteronomium_n god_n command_v the_o priest_n to_o be_v in_o the_o camp_n 9_o deut._n 30._o 2._o num._n 10._o 9_o who_o shall_v sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o when_o as_o minister_n do_v teach_v virtue_n and_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n they_o may_v often_o put_v man_n in_o remembrance_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v unto_o the_o end_n and_o if_o the_o prince_n be_v overslacke_a they_o may_v stir_v he_o up_o unto_o virtue_n and_o utter_v this_o say_n unto_o he_o 5_o deut._n 13._o 5_o the_o lord_n command_v that_o evil_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o among_o the_o people_n joiada_n 2._o 2._o king_n 11._o 2._o a_o good_a high_a priest_n preserve_v joas_n the_o king_n and_o when_o he_o be_v now_o grow_v to_o be_v a_o young_a man_n he_o create_v he_o king_n and_o by_o just_a battle_n chase_v away_o athalia_fw-la although_o that_o he_o fight_v not_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n 38._o exo._n 32._o 38._o yet_o notwithstanding_o moses_n together_o with_o his_o levites_n slay_v a_o great_a number_n of_o idolater_n and_o samuel_n slay_v agag_n 32._o 1._o sa._n 15._o 32._o but_o these_o thing_n because_o they_o be_v particular_a must_v not_o be_v draw_v in_o example_n howbeit_o sword_n whether_o bishop_n have_v the_o rule_n of_o both_o sword_n whether_o bishop_n have_v the_o right_n of_o both_o sword_n i_o will_v speak_v nothing_o in_o this_o place_n only_o this_o one_o thing_n i_o will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a see_v they_o can_v be_v fit_a for_o both_o function_n machab._n book_n of_o machab._n but_o the_o assamonite_n thou_o will_v say_v hold_v both_o the_o head_n byshoprick_n and_o the_o kingdom_n i_o answer_v in_o that_o they_o deliver_v their_o country_n and_o preserve_v religion_n they_o be_v to_o be_v praise_v but_o in_o that_o they_o will_v retain_v unto_o themselves_o the_o kingdom_n i_o allow_v it_o not_o see_v they_o usurp_v a_o other_o man_n right_a for_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v make_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n 21._o gen._n 49._o ver_fw-la 10._o psal_n 89._o ver_fw-la 21._o and_o to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n hostiensis_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v altogether_o of_o my_o mind_n and_o add_v at_o the_o last_o let_v the_o law_n say_v let_v the_o canon_n decree_n let_v man_n cry_v out_o as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v yet_o will_v our_o clergy_n man_n be_v warrior_n and_o assure_o ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o adrian_n the_o pope_n which_o call_v charles_n the_o great_a into_o italy_n the_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n have_v never_o cease_v from_o war_n 13_o but_o the_o war_n of_o mercenary_a soldier_n be_v for_o many_o cause_n disallow_v soldier_n against_o mercenari●_fw-la soldier_n first_o see_v such_o soldier_n do_v without_o a_o cause_n put_v themselves_o in_o danger_n for_o if_o the_o war_n be_v unjust_a and_o that_o unknowen_a unto_o the_o people_n subject_n may_v be_v excuse_v but_o those_o man_n can_v insomuch_o as_o they_o can_v pretend_v a_o obedience_n because_o they_o be_v not_o lead_v with_o obedience_n but_o with_o covetousness_n further_o unless_o that_o these_o man_n will_v so_o easy_o run_v to_o the_o drum_n many_o war_n will_v not_o so_o rash_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n nor_o be_v so_o long_o continue_v moreover_o they_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o their_o country_n be_v ill_o report_v of_o and_o be_v hate_v of_o other_o nation_n for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o which_o take_v harm_n be_v agréeve_v also_o they_o be_v lavish_a of_o their_o own_o life_n which_o have_v be_v meet_a for_o they_o to_o have_v save_v furthermore_o they_o leave_v their_o own_o vocation_n their_o wife_n their_o child_n their_o family_n and_o have_v a_o care_n of_o other_o man_n also_o they_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o their_o own_o country_n since_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o all_o they_o which_o go_v forth_o do_v return_v home_o beside_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o most_o wicked_a example_n for_o after_o a_o sort_n they_o sell_v their_o own_o life_n not_o for_o justice_n sake_n but_o for_o money_n 22_o gen._n 14._o 22_o and_o yet_o will_v not_o abraham_n take_v any_o part_n of_o the_o pray_v from_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n who_o he_o have_v mighty_o holpen_v he_o think_v it_o to_o be_v sufficient_a that_o he_o have_v deliver_v lot_n moreover_o which_o be_v a_o special_a point_n of_o unrighteousness_n they_o hurt_v they_o of_o who_o they_o be_v never_o hurt_v so_o as_o the_o poor_a wretch_n who_o town_n and_o field_n they_o waste_v and_o spoil_v may_v cry_v out_o wherefore_o do_v you_o these_o injury_n unto_o we_o what_o have_v we_o deserve_v at_o your_o hand_n have_v you_o so_o great_a leisure_n from_o your_o own_o business_n as_o you_o will_v destroy_v other_o man_n add_v withal_o that_o such_o soldier_n do_v return_v home_o much_o worse_a than_o they_o go_v forth_o for_o they_o imitate_v whatsoever_o they_o perceive_v to_o be_v do_v naughtilie_o and_o licentiouslie_o among_o other_o nation_n and_o when_o they_o be_v return_v home_o they_o infect_v their_o own_o country_n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o blame_v not_o honest_a league_n make_v between_o near_a neighbour_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o war_n shall_v be_v consider_v whether_o it_o be_v just_a or_o unjust_a further_o that_o they_o assist_v one_o another_o to_o repel_v a_o unjust_a force_n or_o unclean_a not_o for_o to_o make_v war_n for_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o by_o this_o mean_n will_v they_o say_v a_o commonweal_n shall_v be_v unskilful_a of_o warlike_a affair_n howbeit_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o godly_a man_n so_o to_o think_v for_o who_o be_v ever_o less_o exercise_v than_o the_o hebrew_n when_o they_o go_v out_o of_o egypt_n yet_o be_v god_n present_a with_o they_o and_o have_v destroy_v the_o warlike_a nation_n he_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o land_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v paul_n rom._n 3._o 8._o a_o rule_n of_o paul_n but_o that_o rule_n of_o paul_n must_v still_o be_v retain_v we_o must_v do_v no_o evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v of_o it_o so_o many_o mischief_n must_v not_o be_v suffer_v that_o thereby_o we_o may_v have_v better_o exercise_v soldier_n possidonius_fw-la in_o the_o life_n of_o augustine_n the_o 27._o chapter_n say_v that_o he_o in_o his_o write_n will_v never_o commend_v they_o which_o go_v to_o war_n in_o any_o place_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n although_o he_o use_v oftentimes_o to_o entreat_v for_o other_o naughty_a man_n but_o plato_n will_v have_v war_n to_o be_v common_a unto_o woman_n aswell_o as_o all_o other_o exercise_n but_o we_o judge_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o it_o behoove_v they_o to_o tend_v to_o their_o household_n and_o especial_o to_o have_v regard_n unto_o chastity_n warfare_n whether_o woman_n may_v be_v in_o warfare_n yet_o if_o a_o very_a great_a necessity_n of_o the_o commonweal_n require_v they_o may_v help_v the_o soldier_n either_o in_o gather_v of_o stone_n or_o in_o carry_v of_o earth_n unto_o bulwark_n but_o unto_o the_o ordinary_a warrefare_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o endeavour_v themselves_o 14_o now_o as_o
it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n hereof_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n who_o say_v 37._o psa_fw-la 118_o 37._o lighten_v my_o eye_n lest_o they_o see_v vanity_n give_v i_o understanding_n 73._o ibidem_fw-la 73._o that_o i_o may_v learn_v or_o know_v thy_o commandment_n and_o paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n pray_v god_n to_o lighten_v the_o eye_n of_o their_o understanding_n 18._o ephes_n 1_o 18._o that_o they_o may_v know_v what_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o their_o call_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o will_n 36._o psa_fw-la 119_o 36._o david_n pray_v incline_v my_o hart_n unto_o thy_o testimony_n 12._o psal_n 51_o 12._o again_o a_o clean_a hart_n create_v in_o i_o o_o god_n and_o solomon_n his_o son_n pray_v god_n 58._o 1._o kin._n 8_o 58._o that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o the_o people_n a_o understanding_n hart_n see_v therefore_o that_o the_o saint_n do_v prey_n on_o this_o wise_a what_o do_v they_o crave_v what_o do_v they_o pray_v for_o that_o god_n will_v show_v his_o word_n or_o that_o his_o spirit_n may_v knock_v howbeit_o this_o he_o do_v by_o himself_o and_o that_o always_o as_o these_o man_n say_v but_o if_o they_o have_v it_o in_o their_o own_o power_n why_o do_v they_o pray_v let_v themselves_o do_v it_o see_v they_o have_v it_o in_o their_o own_o power_n nevertheless_o since_o prayer_n be_v make_v right_o of_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v a_o token_n unto_o we_o that_o this_o be_v require_v of_o god_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v change_v our_o heart_n this_o argument_n do_v augustine_n diverse_a time_n use_v wherefore_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la the_o 14._o chapter_n thus_o he_o write_v for_o if_o faith_n procee_v only_o of_o a_o free_a will_n and_o be_v not_o give_v of_o god_n to_o what_o purpose_n do_v we_o pray_v for_o they_o which_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v which_o we_o shall_v do_v altogether_o in_o vain_a unless_o we_o do_v very_o right_o believe_v that_o will_v also_o which_o be_v perverse_a and_o contrary_a unto_o faith_n may_v be_v turn_v of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n to_o believe_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o free_a will_n of_o man_n be_v egg_v forward_o when_o it_o be_v say_v this_o day_n 8._o psal_n 95_o 8._o if_o you_o hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o your_o heart_n but_o unless_o that_o god_n can_v also_o take_v awake_a the_o hardness_n of_o the_o hart_n he_o will_v not_o say_v by_o the_o prophet_n i_o will_v take_v from_o they_o their_o stony_a hart_n 19_o ezec._n 11_o 19_o and_o give_v they_o a_o fleshy_a hart_n the_o same_o father_n against_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o pelagius_n unto_o boniface_n the_o first_o book_n and_o 19_o chapter_n for_o to_o what_o purpose_n have_v the_o lord_n command_v we_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o which_o persecute_v we_o do_v we_o desire_v this_o 44_o matth._n 5_o 44_o to_o the_o intent_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v recompense_v to_o they_o for_o their_o good_a will_n or_o not_o rather_o that_o their_o evil_a will_n may_v be_v turn_v unto_o good_a even_o as_o we_o believe_v that_o saul_n be_v not_o then_o in_o vain_a pray_v for_o by_o the_o saint_n who_o he_o persecute_v that_o his_o will_n may_v be_v turn_v unto_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o destroy_v and_o that_o his_o conversion_n come_v from_o above_o it_o appear_v by_o a_o manifest_a oracle_n how_o many_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v daily_o upon_o the_o sudden_a by_o the_o secret_a grace_n of_o god_n draw_v unto_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n he_o declare_v how_o true_a it_o be_v that_o god_n convert_v and_o change_v the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o say_v that_o this_o be_v true_a we_o gather_v it_o not_o by_o the_o conjecture_n of_o man_n but_o we_o discern_v it_o by_o most_o evident_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o chronicle_n 1●_n 2._o p●_n 30_o 1●_n and_o very_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v in_o juda_n that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o one_o hart_n to_o do_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n &_o prince_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n also_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o the_o prophet_n ezechiel_n 26_o ezec._n 36_o 26_o i_o will_v give_v they_o another_o hart_n and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o give_v they_o and_o i_o will_v pull_v out_o of_o their_o flesh_n their_o stony_a hart_n and_o i_o will_v give_v they_o a_o fleshy_a hart_n that_o they_o may_v walk_v in_o my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v my_o judgement_n to_o do_v they_o now_o what_o be_v it_o that_o hester_n that_o queen_n pray_v and_o say_v give_v i_o a_o eloquent_a speech_n 13._o hester_n 14_o verse_n 13._o and_o make_v my_o word_n clear_a before_o the_o lion_n and_o turn_v his_o hart_n unto_o the_o hatred_n of_o they_o that_o be_v our_o enemy_n and_o to_o what_o end_n do_v she_o speak_v these_o word_n in_o her_o prayer_n unto_o god_n if_o god_n do_v not_o work_v the_o will_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o so_o undoubted_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o she_o pray_v for_o that_o king_n as_o a_o féerce_a bull_n at_o the_o first_o sight_n behold_v she_o and_o his_o cruelty_n be_v turn_v into_o lenity_n final_o a_o place_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 14._o acts._n 16_o 14._o the_o 16._o chapter_n must_v be_v weigh_v as_o touch_v lydia_n the_o woman_n which_o sell_v purple_a who_o heart_n god_n open_v that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o paul_n many_o doubtless_o be_v present_a but_o it_o be_v particular_o say_v to_o that_o woman_n that_o god_n open_v her_o hart_n which_o place_n conradus_n pellicanus_fw-la a_o very_a learned_a and_o holy_a man_n be_v my_o predecessor_n thus_o expound_v it_o and_o this_o repentance_n come_v not_o of_o nature_n but_o of_o grace_n who_o hart_n say_v he_o the_o lord_n open_v that_o she_o may_v understand_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v say_v by_o paul_n for_o in_o the_o gospel_n none_o may_v trust_v to_o his_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o in_o our_o own_o presumption_n wherefore_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n mistrust_v the_o strength_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o let_v we_o desire_v god_n that_o he_o will_v open_v our_o heart_n that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n and_o to_o fulfil_v indeed_o that_o which_o we_o hear_v shall_v be_v do_v which_o thing_n we_o read_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o this_o woman_n that_o sell_v purple_a 26._o verse_n 26._o and_o the_o history_n of_o samuel_n the_o first_o book_n the_o ten_o chapter_n teach_v it_o where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o they_o who_o heart_n god_n have_v touch_v follow_v king_n saul_n and_o hereunto_o belong_v those_o thing_n 16_o ezec._n 37_o 16_o which_o ezechiel_n speak_v that_o he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o stony_a heart_n and_o will_v give_v a_o fleshy_a heart_n 13._o phil._n 2_o 13._o unto_o the_o philippian_n also_o paul_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v and_o that_o not_o at_o our_o 8._o ephe._n 2_o 8._o but_o at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n it_o be_v write_v that_o we_o by_o grace_n be_v save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o ourselves_o by_o which_o word_n our_o work_n together_o namely_o that_o which_o be_v active_a be_v remoove_v indeed_o not_o as_o touch_v the_o consent_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o touch_v that_o change_n by_o grace_n of_o which_o we_o now_o speak_v and_o it_o be_v add_v 2._o 1._o thes_n 3_o 2._o that_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o it_o be_v write_v all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n because_o that_o heal_a or_o medicine_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o give_v to_o all_o man_n whereupon_o it_o come_v that_o all_o man_n consent_v not_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n again_o who_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n 19_o ephe._n 1_o 19_o which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o which_o word_n be_v show_v that_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o power_n whereby_o our_o will_n be_v change_v and_o convert_v to_o believe_v and_o whereby_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o pellicanus_fw-la expound_v this_o place_n say_v pellicanus_fw-la pellicanus_fw-la and_o in_o such_o sort_n do_v god_n and_o our_o father_n declare_v his_o power_n and_o goodness_n in_o we_o because_o he_o by_o a_o certain_a secret_n and_o unspeakable_a power_n have_v so_o transform_v we_o from_o the_o old_a institution_n
all_o create_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o be_v daily_o create_v of_o god_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o body_n proposition_n 3_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o paradise_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v so_o allegoricallie_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n shall_v not_o be_v retain_v but_o the_o allegory_n may_v profitable_o he_o join_v unto_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v proposition_n 4_o whether_o that_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n be_v yet_o extant_a can_v be_v define_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n proposition_n 5_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v by_o desert_n of_o action_n command_v or_o forbid_v therein_o but_o for_o that_o in_o it_o be_v contain_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o do_v of_o thing_n which_o always_o must_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o counsel_n of_o man_n proposition_n 6_o both_o kind_n of_o death_n as_o well_o of_o the_o body_n as_o of_o the_o soul_n be_v set_v before_o adam_n if_o he_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n proposition_n 7_o the_o first_o man_n be_v create_v mortal_a albeit_o it_o be_v in_o he_o not_o to_o die_v proposition_n 8_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v alone_o because_o it_o be_v not_o pleasant_a nor_o honest_a nor_o profitable_a proposition_n 9_o three_o exercise_n be_v set_v before_o man_n at_o his_o creation_n namely_o to_o obey_v god_n to_o behold_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n create_v and_o to_o exercise_v husbandry_n proposition_n 10_o the_o sleep_n of_o adam_n in_o the_o bring_n forth_o of_o the_o woman_n signify_v unto_o we_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n purchase_v his_o church_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o breathe_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o first_o man_n be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n be_v a_o token_n show_v we_o that_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n but_o outward_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n proposition_n 2_o the_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n be_v plant_v in_o the_o region_n of_o eden_n as_o the_o name_n declare_v not_o far_o from_o assyria_n mesopotamia_n and_o arabia_n proposition_n 3_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n have_v fruit_n which_o prolong_v life_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o allegoricallie_o signify_v christ_n proposition_n 4_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a be_v not_o only_o so_o call_v of_o that_o which_o follow_v but_o because_o of_o the_o same_o there_o be_v a_o law_n give_v who_o property_n be_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a proposition_n 5_o by_o forbid_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o rule_v ourselves_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o else_o to_o determine_v by_o man_n judgement_n what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o be_v evil_a which_o nevertheless_o be_v requisite_a that_o we_o decree_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o word_n proposition_n 6_o see_v the_o law_n be_v give_v to_o adam_n the_o woman_n be_v not_o yet_o create_v it_o show_v that_o woman_n shall_v be_v instruct_v by_o man_n as_o touch_v the_o law_n and_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n proposition_n 7_o the_o woman_n be_v make_v of_o the_o rib_n of_o man_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v founde_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o christ_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o child_n must_v not_o for_o their_o wife_n sake_n so_o leave_v their_o parent_n as_o not_o to_o succour_v or_o reverence_v they_o albeit_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o live_v near_o to_o their_o wife_n than_o to_o their_o parent_n proposition_n 2_o whereas_o the_o husband_n and_o wife_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o flesh_n matrimony_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v inseparable_a so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v be_v one_o flesh_n which_o be_v take_v away_o by_o adultery_n and_o for_o want_v of_o power_n to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o marriage_n one_o towards_o another_o proposition_n 3_o matrimony_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n because_o it_o represent_v unto_o we_o the_o most_o streict_n conjunction_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o church_n proposition_n 4_o the_o church_n immediate_o from_o her_o beginning_n have_v adam_n for_o her_o governor_n not_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v with_o the_o selfsame_o word_n both_o as_o touch_v christ_n and_o as_o touch_v matrimony_n proposition_n 5_o temptation_n be_v therefore_o permit_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n proposition_n 6_o the_o devil_n promise_v unto_o the_o woman_n those_o thing_n which_o she_o have_v already_o to_o wit_n the_o open_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o likeness_n to_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o whereas_o god_n bring_v eve_n frame_v unto_o adam_n we_o be_v thereby_o teach_v that_o those_o marriage_n be_v not_o well_o knit_v where_o god_n join_v not_o the_o party_n together_o proposition_n 2_o since_o that_o man_n soul_n be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n and_o be_v immortal_a we_o must_v not_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v derive_v unto_o the_o child_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o parent_n proposition_n 3_o the_o serpent_n be_v the_o fit_a instrument_n in_o temptation_n to_o express_v the_o ill_a practice_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o craftiness_n against_o man_n proposition_n 4_o the_o wicked_a will_n of_o the_o tempter_n declare_v the_o most_o skilful_a wisdom_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o know_v how_o to_o use_v well_o even_o most_o wicked_a thing_n proposition_n 5_o this_o do_v the_o devil_n by_o his_o first_o temptation_n chéeflie_o endeavour_n that_o god_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v beléeve_v as_o it_o be_v requisite_a proposition_n 6_o the_o original_n of_o eve_n fall_n be_v that_o set_v aside_o the_o earnest_a cogitation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n she_o begin_v to_o weigh_v in_o her_o mind_n the_o commodity_n of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n which_o the_o devil_n set_v before_o she_o together_o with_o the_o beauty_n and_o sweetness_n thereof_o proposition_n 7_o the_o shame_n and_o the_o devise_n of_o the_o cover_n be_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n but_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o a_o bridle_n whereby_o the_o evil_a now_o bring_v in_o might_n the_o less_o spread_v itself_o abroad_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o shame_n and_o the_o shun_v of_o god_n sight_n be_v property_n which_o follow_v sin_n proposition_n 2_o the_o enmity_n which_o god_n put_v between_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o woman_n belong_v unto_o all_o godly_a man_n proposition_n 3_o albeit_o the_o power_n of_o tread_v down_o the_o devil_n be_v proper_a unto_o christ_n yet_o do_v he_o communicate_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faithful_a proposition_n 4_o the_o curse_n which_o god_n lay_v upon_o the_o first_o man_n be_v not_o only_o punishment_n but_o also_o they_o show_v man_n their_o duty_n and_o bring_v remedy_n against_o temptation_n and_o sin_n proposition_n 5_o if_o the_o creature_n through_o man_n transgression_n fall_v into_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o they_o be_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o upon_o the_o restitution_n of_o he_o those_o also_o shall_v be_v restore_v proposition_n 6_o since_o god_n remoove_v idleness_n from_o man_n they_o which_o altogether_o shun_v labour_n agree_v not_o with_o his_o will_n proposition_n 7_o christ_n take_v not_o away_o by_o his_o first_o come_n the_o punishment_n of_o these_o curse_n but_o mitigate_v they_o howbeit_o at_o his_o second_o come_v he_o will_v altogether_o take_v they_o away_o proposition_n 8_o see_v garment_n be_v invent_v for_o the_o profit_n and_o honesty_n of_o this_o present_a life_n those_o garment_n be_v justly_o find_v fault_n withal_o which_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o these_o two_o property_n proposition_n 9_o sacrifice_n be_v sign_n whereby_o we_o confess_v the_o excellency_n of_o god_n proposition_n 10_o any_o man_n be_v accept_v of_o god_n before_o his_o work_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o proposition_n 11_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n either_o by_o exhort_v or_o command_v show_v shall_v be_v do_v those_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o be_v do_v of_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v holpen_v by_o his_o grace_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o say_v that_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o first_o man_n be_v open_v after_o sin_n because_o there_o break_v out_o a_o new_a feel_v of_o new_a punishment_n proposition_n 2_o by_o the_o example_n of_o god_n who_o so_o preciselie_o inquire_v after_o sin_n judge_n be_v admonish_v that_o they_o condemn_v not_o man_n before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o their_o cause_n examine_v proposition_n 3_o in_o the_o curse_v of_o the_o serpent_n those_o punishment_n of_o
that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o they_o otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v institute_v by_o god_n it_o be_v dangerous_a unto_o he_o and_o a_o abomination_n unto_o god_n proposition_n 6_o as_o god_n call_v sacrifice_n abomination_n when_o they_o be_v do_v without_o faith_n so_o may_v we_o true_o determine_v of_o other_o good_a work_n in_o general_a which_o be_v do_v without_o faith_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o original_n of_o light_n in_o the_o church_n proceed_v hereof_o that_o the_o temple_n in_o old_a time_n be_v dark_a and_o the_o christian_n watch_v there_o in_o the_o night_n proposition_n 2_o the_o elevation_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o mass_a priest_n be_v take_v out_o of_o leviticus_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o the_o lift_n up_o and_o move_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o brethren_n cast_v forth_o jeptha_n and_o say_v thou_o shall_v be_v no_o heir_n in_o our_o father_n house_n for_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o a_o strange_a woman_n proposition_n 1_o as_o touch_v the_o punishment_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n 20_o deut._n 24_o 16_o eze._n c._n 18_o 20_o every_o one_o shall_v bear_v his_o own_o burden_n not_o another_o man_n proposition_n 2_o whereas_o some_o be_v say_v to_o suffer_v temporal_a punishment_n for_o other_o they_o can_v complain_v but_o themselves_o have_v deserve_v the_o same_o proposition_n 3_o god_n commit_v no_o injustice_n if_o at_o any_o time_n he_o punish_v the_o child_n with_o temporal_a punishment_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o parent_n proposition_n 4_o it_o must_v not_o only_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o justice_n but_o also_o to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o he_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o parent_n unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n proposition_n 5_o see_v that_o good_a man_n be_v bewrap_v in_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a god_n have_v appoint_v a_o discipline_n upon_o the_o earth_n proposition_n 6_o this_o be_v proper_a unto_o god_n and_o must_v not_o be_v use_v of_o man_n to_o punish_v child_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o parent_n when_o they_o consent_v not_o to_o their_o parent_n crime_n thus_o end_v the_o proposition_n of_o doctor_n peter_n martyr_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n exodus_fw-la leviticus_fw-la and_o judge_n a_o disputation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n hold_v within_o the_o famous_a university_n of_o oxford_n between_o d._n peter_n martyr_n and_o other_o divine_n of_o that_o university_n peter_n martyr_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n there_o be_v two_o cause_n that_o have_v move_v i_o to_o write_v of_o the_o eucharist_n namely_o the_o slander_n of_o evil_a man_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o my_o friend_n the_o one_o whereof_o to_o contemn_v have_v be_v a_o point_n of_o uncurtesie_n and_o the_o other_o to_o neglect_n be_v ungodlie_a since_o i_o perceive_v that_o thereof_o depend_v no_o small_a hindrance_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o god._n for_o if_o only_a my_o own_o cause_n be_v here_o deal_v withal_o i_o may_v easy_o have_v contemn_v these_o thing_n since_o i_o make_v not_o so_o great_a a_o account_n of_o my_o own_o estimation_n that_o i_o think_v i_o ought_v to_o be_v move_v with_o the_o slander_n of_o adversary_n and_o with_o the_o vain_a rumour_n of_o enemy_n i_o know_v it_o be_v a_o wise_a man_n part_n to_o dissemble_v very_o many_o thing_n and_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v of_o this_o sort_n and_o that_o christian_a charity_n endure_v all_o thing_n that_o it_o seek_v not_o his_o own_o but_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n howbeit_o not_o my_o own_o cause_n but_o christ_n be_v here_o in_o hand_n not_o my_o name_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v ill_o report_v of_o for_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v so_o join_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o reach_v even_o to_o himself_o for_o so_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o albeit_o good_a and_o godly_a thing_n be_v never_o so_o godly_a and_o learned_o handle_v yet_o if_o he_o that_o handle_v they_o shall_v want_v authority_n special_o if_o he_o be_v deface_v or_o disgrace_v by_o any_o blemish_n they_o proceed_v with_o little_a or_o no_o fruit_n at_o all_o but_o what_o the_o impudency_n of_o some_o have_v spread_v abroad_o as_o concern_v the_o disputation_n have_v by_o i_o at_o oxford_n the_o summer_n last_o pass_v and_o how_o they_o slander_v i_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n both_o prince_n noble_a man_n commonalty_n citizen_n and_o country_n man_n i_o will_v not_o say_v for_o they_o have_v do_v nothing_o in_o secret_a but_o every_o corner_n street_n house_n shop_n and_o tavern_n do_v still_o sound_a of_o their_o lie_v triumph_n and_o victory_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o these_o ill_a report_n be_v come_v also_o into_o other_o nation_n wherefore_o one_o cause_n that_o urge_v i_o to_o set_v forth_o these_o disputation_n be_v this_o and_o another_o as_o i_o say_v at_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o request_n of_o friend_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n i_o deny_v until_o this_o present_a time_n as_o well_o for_o that_o i_o know_v there_o be_v book_n enough_o extant_a of_o this_o matter_n wherein_o every_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v sufficient_o instruct_v as_o also_o for_o that_o no_o man_n know_v my_o own_o do_n better_a than_o myself_o which_o hitherto_o i_o have_v so_o account_v of_o as_o i_o will_v not_o gentle_a reader_n hinder_v thou_o by_o they_o from_o the_o read_n of_o better_a book_n but_o now_o these_o my_o friend_n be_v move_v and_o that_o not_o a_o little_a with_o the_o false_a report_n of_o evil_a man_n have_v so_o urge_v i_o that_o grant_v to_o the_o request_n of_o some_o &_o compel_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o other_o at_o the_o length_n i_o yield_v for_o what_o can_v i_o deny_v unto_o the_o most_o reverend_a archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n unto_o who_o i_o be_o most_o of_o all_o behold_v or_o what_o can_v i_o deny_v to_o the_o king_n visitor_n which_o be_v not_o only_o present_a at_o these_o disputation_n but_o be_v also_o precedent_n thereof_o wherefore_o i_o deliver_v unto_o thou_o this_o disputation_n 10._o look_v this_o treatise_n before_o part_n 4_o chap._n 10._o together_o with_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n for_o the_o plain_a declaration_n thereof_o all_o which_o thing_n i_o have_v write_v in_o simple_a sort_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v without_o any_o stile_n nevertheless_o faithful_o for_o as_o concern_v the_o disputation_n i_o compare_v my_o own_o with_o the_o example_n of_o the_o adversary_n which_o when_o i_o have_v diligent_o read_v those_o thing_n which_o i_o see_v i_o have_v omit_v that_o be_v of_o some_o importance_n i_o endeavour_v as_o much_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n will_v suffer_v to_o restore_v again_o out_o of_o their_o writing_n and_o whereas_o i_o perceive_v they_o otherwhile_o to_o have_v expound_v their_o reason_n more_o large_o and_o in_o writing_n to_o have_v handle_v they_o more_o artificiallie_o than_o they_o be_v utter_v in_o the_o time_n of_o dispute_v i_o also_o retain_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n have_v expound_v the_o same_o somewhat_o more_o large_o which_o nevertheless_o happen_v very_o seldom_o but_o as_o concern_v the_o effect_n the_o principal_a point_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o argument_n and_o of_o the_o confutation_n or_o answer_n i_o have_v not_o so_o far_o as_o i_o know_v change_v or_o invert_v any_o thing_n wherein_o i_o may_v do_v wrong_a to_o they_o which_o dispute_v with_o i_o yea_o and_o i_o have_v cause_v that_o oftentimes_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n always_o the_o self-same_a word_n may_v be_v set_v down_o which_o we_o use_v on_o either_o side_n when_o we_o dispute_v together_o so_o far_o as_o either_o my_o memory_n will_v serve_v i_o or_o their_o note_n which_o gather_v will_v give_v i_o to_o understand_v whosoever_o therefore_o be_v present_a at_o our_o disputation_n shall_v perceive_v that_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o argument_n omit_v nor_o add_v and_o shall_v understand_v that_o i_o have_v not_o where_o flee_v from_o the_o sum_n and_o sense_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v speak_v but_o and_o if_o any_o ill_n dispose_v person_n shall_v for_o such_o be_v their_o nature_n complain_v that_o i_o have_v omit_v or_o wrest_v any_o thing_n those_o thing_n let_v they_o put_v in_o writing_n and_o let_v they_o not_o deal_v against_o i_o by_o word_n which_o make_v no_o matter_n if_o they_o be_v spend_v in_o vain_a but_o let_v they_o deal_v by_o write_a reason_n which_o since_o man_n may_v both_o read_v and_o well_o consider_v this_o kind_n of_o disputation_n
look_v imprecation_n witch_n who_o it_o be_v that_o appear_v at_o the_o call_n of_o the_o witch_n 1_n 72_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v not_o samuel_n say_v augustine_n 1_n 75_o a_o witch_n witch_n have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o godly_a 1_o 76_o b_o 77_o a_o law_n of_o prince_n against_o they_o 1_o 19a_o and_o such_o as_o repair_v unto_o they_o 1_n 84_o b_o 85_o a_o witchery_n of_o the_o force_n of_o witchery_n &_o the_o cause_n thereof_o in_o old_a woman_n and_o upon_o who_o it_o work_v most_o 1_n 79_o b_o witness_n these_o word_n there_o be_v three_o which_o bear_v witness_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n expound_v 1_o 105_o a_o the_o three_o thing_n which_o bear_v witness_n of_o christ_n 4_o 113_o a_o how_o many_o way_n god_n be_v call_v to_o witness_n 2_o 372_o a_o what_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o be_v forbid_v to_o bear_v false_a witness_n 2_o 553_o a_o witness_n two_o famous_a witness_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o last_o age_n 3_o 382_o b_o wo._n woman_n the_o state_n of_o the_o woman_n far_o worse_o than_o of_o the_o man_n 2_o 460_o b_o that_o she_o be_v and_o be_v not_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o after_o what_o manner_n 1_n 124_o a_o why_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o one_o woman_n shall_v be_v both_o a_o wife_n and_o a_o servant_n to_o any_o man_n 2_o 379_o ab_fw-la why_o paul_n will_v the_o woman_n to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n 2_o 242_o b_o whether_o before_o sin_n the_o woman_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o man_n 2_o 379_o a_o woman_n whether_o woman_n may_v be_v in_o warrefare_n 4_o 288_o a_o they_o teach_v the_o people_n open_o 4_o 7_o ab_fw-la they_o must_v have_v their_o head_n cover_v in_o the_o congregation_n and_o why_o 2_o 481_o b_o what_o woman_n labour_v to_o please_v man_n 2_o 510_o a_o why_o woman_n be_v command_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n 4_o 7_o b_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n 4_o 7_o a_o woman_n circumcise_v among_o the_o egyptian_n 4_o 111_o a_o why_o the_o woman_n that_o prophesy_v be_v command_v to_o cover_v their_o head_n 4_o 8_o a_o whether_o woman_n may_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n 4_o 7_o ab_fw-la what_o ornament_n woman_n may_v use_v and_o not_o use_v two_o 513b_n look_v woman_n what_o be_v speak_v concern_v paint_n of_o the_o face_n 2_o 508_o ab_fw-la and_o so_o forward_o holy_a woman_n maintain_v and_o relieve_v christ_n 4_o 29_o a_o why_o we_o be_v call_v man_n &_o why_o woman_n as_o augustine_n allegorical_o say_v 1_n 124_o a_o wooer_n what_o kind_n of_o emulation_n be_v betwixt_o wooer_n 2_o 417_o b_o wonder_n the_o difference_n between_o sign_n and_o wonder_n show_v out_o of_o diverse_a writer_n 1_n 71_o b_o why_o the_o scripture_n have_v so_o often_o join_v these_o two_o word_n together_o 1_n 71_o b_o ¶_o look_n miracle_n word_n of_o god_n the_o difference_n of_o god_n word_n and_o philosophy_n 1_o 58_o a_o the_o preach_v thereof_o have_v all_o man_n subject_a unto_o it_o 4_o 230_o b_o how_o miracle_n win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1_o 63_o b._n the_o same_o thing_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o word_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o sacrament_n 2_o 635_o a_o neither_o youth_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v except_v from_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 1_o 57_o b_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o same_o read_v all_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n the_o force_n of_o god_n word_n in_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o same_o 1_o 58_o a_o the_o difference_n of_o god_n word_n special_o in_o the_o eucharist_n 4_o 196_o ab_fw-la 187_o b_o it_o be_v the_o word_n or_o christ_n that_o god_n speak_v by_o to_o the_o father_n and_o prophet_n 1_o 26_o b_o the_o force_n of_o the_o inward_a word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mind_n 3_o 176_o b_o god_n use_v the_o inward_a word_n and_o the_o outward_a and_o in_o who_o 2_o 233_o a_o whether_o the_o outward_a or_o visible_a sign_n of_o baptism_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a to_o regeneration_n 2_o 233_o a_o of_o the_o word_n unwritten_a and_o the_o word_n write_v with_o the_o antiquity_n of_o both_o 1_n 42_o b_o and_o how_o to_o believe_v it_o 3_o 70_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v write_v before_o moses_n time_n 4_o 72_o a_o whether_o christ_n body_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o his_o word_n 4_o 214_o a_o ¶_o look_v scripture_n word_n word_n be_v partly_o natural_a and_o partly_o after_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o namer_n 2_o 590._o 591_o a_o word_n be_v the_o principal_a sign_n thereof_o 2_o 542a_o b_o what_o they_o be_v 3_o 342_o b_o aristotle_n definition_n of_o they_o and_o who_o abuse_v they_o 2_o 544_o b_o the_o use_n of_o they_o 3_o 304b_n 4_o 144ab_n certain_a hebrew_n word_n receive_v into_o the_o church_n 4_o 215_o ab_fw-la work_v of_o god_n how_o be_v it_o true_a that_o god_n rest_v from_o work_v the_o seven_o day_n since_o he_o work_v daily_a and_o hourly_o 2_o 374_o b_o how_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a work_n unto_o god_n to_o punish_v evil_n 3_o 44a_n that_o god_n do_v work_v now_o also_o and_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o how_o 1_n 122b_n that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v evil_a be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n as_o pighius_fw-la say_v 2_o 218_o a_o work_v of_o man_n how_o the_o self_n same_o work_n be_v produce_v by_o god_n and_o by_o us._n 1_o 189_o b_o 190_o a_o how_o it_o may_v be_v both_o of_o god_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o evil_a man_n 1_n 183_o a_o how_o it_o can_v be_v the_o end_n of_o a_o action_n when_o it_o be_v after_o the_o action_n 1_n 7_o b_o sometime_o that_o which_o remain_v be_v more_o excellent_a and_o sometime_o the_o action_n and_o why_o 1_n 4_o b_o a_o habit_n in_o the_o mind_n be_v no_o work_n though_o it_o come_v of_o frequent_a action_n 1_o 4_o b_o whether_o there_o may_v be_v any_o work_n of_o man_n find_v that_o shall_v through_o please_v god_n two_o 572_o a_o none_o good_a say_v augustine_n without_o faith_n 2_o 259_o a_o to_o the_o goodness_n thereof_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o the_o same_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v not_o evil_a what_o then_o 2_o 311_o b_o a_o work_n can_v be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o habitual_a intent_n 1_n 93_o b_o 95a_o the_o rule_n whereby_o it_o must_v be_v direct_v 3_o 118_o a_o how_o the_o conscience_n may_v make_v a_o work_n good_a or_o evil_n 3_o 165_o a_o a_o work_n seem_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n may_v be_v sin_n prove_v 2_o 267_o b_o of_o a_o work_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o man_n and_o yet_o break_v not_o out_o from_o his_o own_o strength_n 1_o 132b_n how_o man_n be_v say_v to_o work_n together_o with_o god_n 3_o 13_o b_o 14_o a_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n can_v justify_v 3_o 60._o of_o the_o work_n wrought_v which_o be_v suppose_v to_o merit_v salvation_n 4_o 106_o b_o 194_o b_o whether_o a_o infidel_n can_v do_v a_o work_n please_v god_n 3_o 118a_n a_o charitable_a work_n of_o a_o infidel_n namely_o to_o clothe_v the_o naked_a be_v sin_n prove_v two_o 267_o ab_fw-la work_v of_o god_n how_o and_o after_o what_o sort_n we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n 1_o 13b_v three_o sort_n of_o they_o about_o his_o creature_n 1_o 181_o b_o 182_o a_o 184_o a_o they_o do_v help_v one_o a_o other_o two_o 599_o a_o of_o the_o particular_a and_o common_a work_n of_o the_o trinity_n ●_o 599_o b_o work_n of_o man_n no_o place_n for_o good_a work_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 3_o 368_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o do_v they_o for_o reward_n sake_n 2_o 573b_n 574_o a_o what_o be_v turn_v into_o sin_n 3_o 152_o b_o 153_o a_o 26_o a_o faith_n go_v necessary_o before_o they_o 3_o 154_o ab_fw-la faith_n perfect_v and_o form_v they_o 3_o 149_o b_o whether_o true_a faith_n and_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v 3_o 131_o b_o 132_o ab_fw-la how_o the_o old_a father_n of_o the_o church_n esteem_v they_o 3_o 121_o a_o they_o do_v serve_v both_o to_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n 3_o 34a_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o 3_o 14b_n what_o they_o that_o defend_v merit_n do_v think_v of_o they_o 3_o 54_o a_o they_o after_o justification_n do_v profit_n 3_o 144a_o a_o ill_a comparison_n make_v between_o they_o and_o sin_n 3_o 22_o ab_fw-la they_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o call_n 3_o 15_o a_o they_o depend_v of_o god_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o cast_v away_o all_o care_n of_o live_v well_o 3_o 3_o a_o whereof_o good_a work_v be_v sign_n and_o seal_n 3_o 95_o b_o in_o who_o they_o be_v a_o beginning_n to_o
law_n against_o theft_n condemn_v 166_o b_o w._n war_n why_o it_o must_v be_v make_v and_o not_o make_v 162_o a_o diverse_a necessary_a document_n touch_v it_o as_o well_o for_o laceman_n as_o churchman_n 149_o a_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o christian_n 162_o a_o water_n above_o the_o firmament_n in_o the_o middle_a region_n of_o the_o air_n 144_o a_o whereunto_o we_o must_v attribute_v the_o keep_v back_o of_o they_o from_o drown_v the_o world_n 144_o b_o by_o what_o quality_n the_o nature_n thereof_o be_v try_v 1_o b_o what_o they_o be_v which_o david_n say_v do_v pass_v through_o even_o to_o his_o soul_n 6_o b_o 7_o a_o whoordome_n and_o decree_n of_o law_n touch_v the_o punishment_n thereof_o 142_o b_o widow_n true_a who_o and_o to_o be_v reléeve_v at_o the_o church_n charge_n 76_o b_o 77_o a_o consolation_n for_o they_o touch_v their_o husband_n death_n 83_o b_o 84_o a_o will_n whether_o it_o can_v be_v compel_v 119_o b_o how_o be_v not_o regenerate_v it_o be_v towards_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n 108_o a_o what_o necessity_n strive_v therewith_o 105_o a_o a_o power_n passive_a and_o obedientiall_a therein_o 118_o b_o in_o the_o regenerate_a not_o free_o in_o this_o life_n 125_o a_o b_o how_o it_o concur_v activelie_a &_o passivelie_o in_o both_o conversion_n thereof_o 114_o a_o b_o 108_o a_o whereunto_o the_o change_n thereof_o from_o evil_a to_o good_a must_v be_v attribute_v 110_o a_o b_o 111_o a_o b_o resemble_v to_o a_o horse_n and_o to_o prisonment_n 106_o a_o objection_n touch_v the_o change_n thereof_o unto_o better_a 119_o b_o 120_o a_o sometime_o it_o will_v thing_n unpossible_a 107_o a_o diversity_n of_o affection_n by_o turn_n therein_o 105_o b_o it_o command_v man_n action_n 105_o b_o freedom_n and_o captivity_n thereof_o 105_o a_o b_o 106_o a_o b_o 107_o a_o b_o god_n will_v distinguish_v 119_o b_o wisdom_n of_o god_n how_o it_o abase_v itself_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 48_o b_o 49_o a_o wisdom_n of_o man_n how_o homely_a judge_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n 33_o a_o witness_v false_a and_o what_o the_o law_n of_o forbid_v it_o do_v teach_v we_o 167_o b_o wife_n and_o why_o the_o father_n seek_v they_o in_o their_o own_o kindred_n 152_o b_o why_o god_n require_v of_o the_o israelite_n that_o they_o shall_v abstain_v from_o they_o until_o the_o three_o day_n 163_o a_o ¶_o look_v polygamy_n woman_n religious_a that_o follow_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 76_o b_o why_o christ_n resurrection_n be_v first_o show_v to_o they_o 9_o b_o 10_o a_o their_o manly_a courage_n 61_o a_o b_o why_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n 153_o b_o honest_a must_v not_o tire_v and_o disguise_v themselves_o like_o harlot_n 156_o b_o wonder_n wrought_v on_o mount_n sina_n when_o the_o law_n be_v publish_v be_v do_v by_o angel_n 163_o b_o the_o remedy_n against_o strange_a one_o and_o why_o god_n send_v they_o 111_o a_o b._n word_n of_o god_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o why_o 39_o a_o distinguish_v into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 152_o b_o a_o inward_a and_o outward_a instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o whereto_o 114_o b_o it_o go_v natural_o before_o faith_n 114_o b_o a_o praise_v thereof_o 36_o b_o and_o so_o forward_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o it_o 152_o b_o 153a_o it_o be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n 26_o b_o 27_o a_o a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o study_n thereof_o 249._o 250._o unto_o who_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o same_o do_v belong_v 49a_o unto_o what_o excellent_a thing_n it_o be_v compare_v 45_o a_o wherein_o the_o power_n thereof_o do_v first_o shine_v 2_o b_o we_o no_o less_o receive_v christ_n therein_o than_o in_o the_o eucharist_n 231_o a_o work_n be_v no_o necessary_a proof_n of_o a_o man_n life_n good_a or_o bad_a 153_o b_o a_o distinction_n of_o they_o and_o their_o subject_n 131_o b_o three_o manner_n of_o perfection_n require_v in_o they_o by_o god_n law_n 166_o a_o they_o be_v cause_n and_o not_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n 165_o b_o 147_o b_o 149_o b_o what_o we_o be_v to_o determine_v of_o such_o as_o be_v do_v without_o faith_n 170_o b_o all_z of_o the_o regenerate_a be_v sin_n 104_o b_o 105_o a_o how_o our_o resurrection_n stand_v in_o they_o 11_o b_o a_o case_n touch_v they_o to_o be_v do_v secret_o or_o open_o 71_o b_o how_o they_o obtain_v the_o promise_n 157_o a_o of_o themselves_o absolute_o they_o make_v we_o not_o acceptable_a 146_o b_o 22_o b_o 23_o a_o work_n of_o god_n what_o be_v call_v miracle_n 57_o a_o b_o certain_z wonderful_a unknown_a to_o natural_a reason_n 46_o a_o world_n universal_a be_v god_n school_n or_o place_n of_o war_n fare_v and_o why_o 58_o a_o worship_n outward_a and_o inward_a due_a to_o christ_n 8_o b_o 9_o a_o religious_a towards_o god_n require_v 60_o a_o b_o against_o they_o that_o give_v it_o to_o creature_n 160_o a_o b_o what_o be_v common_a to_o god_n and_o great_a man_n 162_o a_o b_o 157_o a_o wrath_n of_o god_n describe_v 17b_n 18_o a_o wrestle_v of_o jacob_n with_o the_o angel_n and_o we_o with_o god_n and_o when_o we_o overcome_v 155_o b_o y._n year_n of_o plenty_n and_o the_o magistrate_n charge_v therein_o 157_o a_o finis_fw-la propositi_fw-la laus_fw-la christo_fw-la nescia_fw-la finis_fw-la imprint_v at_o london_n in_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la row_v at_o the_o cost_n and_o charge_n of_o henry_n denham_n thomas_n chard_n william_n broome_n and_o andrew_n maunsell_n 1583._o allow_v according_a to_o her_o majesty_n injunction_n